Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | HTML | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: Earl Hubert's Daughter - The Polishing of the Pearl - A Tale of the 13th Century
Author: Holt, Emily Sarah, 1836-1893
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Earl Hubert's Daughter - The Polishing of the Pearl - A Tale of the 13th Century" ***


Earl Hubert's Daughter, by Emily Sarah Holt.

________________________________________________________________________
This is one of Emily Holt's admirable and deeply researched historical
novels, this time set in the early years of the thirteenth century.  The
main players in the story appear at first sight to be the upper-class
ladies of the Court, and their various somewhat confusing relationships.

But early in the book an old Jewish pedlar comes and displays rich wares
of a surprising value and variety.  One of the girls asks if he can get
some special embroidery done on a scarf she wants to give as a present.
Abraham sends in his young daughter Belasez and conditions are agreed
such that she will not be called upon to do or eat anything she should
not, and all this seems to work very well.  But the story involving
Belasez, her mother Licorice, and her brother Delecresse, gets more and
more involved and interesting.  Belasez realises that there has been
something in the past that she wants to unearth, and gradually the whole
strange story is revealed.

________________________________________________________________________
EARL HUBERT'S DAUGHTER, BY EMILY SARAH HOLT.



PREFACE.

The thirteenth century was one of rapid and terrible incidents,
tumultuous politics, and in religious matters of low and degrading
superstition.  Transubstantiation had just been formally adopted as a
dogma of the Church, accompanied as it always is by sacramental
confession, and quickly followed by the elevation of the host and the
invention of the pix.  Various Orders of monks were flocking into
England.  The Pope was doing his best, aided by the Roman clergy, and to
their shame be it said, by some of the English, to fix his iron yoke on
the neck of the Church of England.  The doctrine of human merit was at
its highest pitch; the doctrine of justification by faith was absolutely
_unknown_.

Amid this thick darkness, a very small number of true-hearted,
Heaven-taught men bore aloft the torch of truth--that is, of so much
truth as they knew.  One of such men as these I have sketched in Father
Bruno.  And if, possibly, the portrait is slightly over-charged for the
date,--if he be represented as a shade more enlightened than at that
time he could well be--I trust that the anachronism will be pardoned for
the sake of those eternal verities which would otherwise have been left
wanting.

There is one fact in ecclesiastical history which should never be
forgotten, and this is, that in all ages, within the visible corporate
body which men call the Church, God has had a Church of His own, true,
living, and faithful.  He has ever reserved to Himself that typical
seven thousand in Israel, of whom all the knees have not bowed unto
Baal, and every mouth hath not kissed him.

Such men as these have been termed "Protestants before the Reformation."
The only reason why they were not Protestants, was because there was as
yet no Protestantism.  The heavenly call to "come out of her" had not
yet been heard.  These men were to be found in all stations and
callings; on the throne--as in Alfred the Great, Saint Louis, and Henry
the Sixth; in the hierarchy--as in Anselm, Bradwardine, and Grosteste;
in the cloister--as in Bernard de Morlaix; but perhaps most frequently
in that rank and file of whom the world never hears, and of some of
whom, however low their place in it, the world is not worthy.

These men often made terrible blunders--as Saint Louis did when he
persecuted the Jews, under the delusion that he was thus doing honour to
the Lord whom they had rejected: and Bernard de Morlaix, when he led a
crusade against the Albigenses, of whom he had heard only slanderous
reports.  Do we make no blunders, that we should be in haste to judge
them?  How much more has been given to us than to them!  How much more,
then, will be required?



CHAPTER ONE.

FATHER AND MOTHER.

  "He was a true man, this--who lived for England,
  And he knew how to die."

  "Sweet?  There are many sweet things.  Clover's sweet,
  And so is liquorice, though 'tis hard to chew;
  And sweetbriar--till it scratches."

"Look, Margaret!  Thine aunt, Dame Marjory, is come to spend thy
birthday with thee."

"And see my new bower?  [Boudoir].  O Aunt Marjory, I am so glad!"

The new bower was a very pretty room--for the thirteenth century--but
its girl-owner was the prettiest thing in it.  Her age was thirteen that
day, but she was so tall that she might easily have been supposed two or
three years older.  She had a very fair complexion, violet-blue eyes,
and hair exactly the colour of a cedar pencil.  If physiognomy may be
trusted, the face indicated a loving and amiable disposition.

The two ladies who had just entered from the ante-room--the mother and
aunt of Margaret were both tall, finely-developed women, with shining
fair hair.  They spoke French, evidently as the mother-tongue: but in
1234 that was the custom of all English nobles.  These ladies had been
brought up in England from early maidenhood, but they were Scottish
Princesses--the eldest and youngest daughters of King William the Lion,
by his Norman Queen, Ermengarde de Beaumont.  Both sisters were very
handsome, but the younger bore the palm of beauty in the artist's sense,
though she was not endowed with the singular charm of manner which
characterised her sister.  Chroniclers tell us that the younger
Princess, Marjory, was a woman of marvellous beauty.  Yet something more
attractive than mere beauty must have distinguished the Princess
Margaret, for two men of the most opposite dispositions to have borne
her image on their hearts till death, and for her husband--a man capable
of abject superstition, and with his hot-headed youth far behind him--to
have braved all the thunders of Rome, rather than put her away.

These royal sisters had a singular history.  Their father, King William,
had put them for education into the hands of King John of England and
his Queen, Isabelle of Angouleme, when they were little more than
infants, in other words, he had committed his tender doves to the charge
of almost the worst man and woman whom he could have selected.  There
were just two vices of which His English Majesty was not guilty, and
those were cowardice and hypocrisy.  He was a plain, unvarnished
villain, and he never hesitated for a moment to let people see it.
Queen Isabelle had been termed "the Helen of the Middle Ages," alike
from her great beauty, and from the fact that her husband abducted her
when betrothed elsewhere.  She can hardly be blamed for this, since she
was a mere child at the time: but as she grew up, she developed a
character quite worthy of the scoundrel to whom she was linked.  To
personal profligacy she added sordid avarice, and a positive incapacity
for telling the truth.  To these delightful persons the poor little
Scottish maidens, Margaret and Isabel, were consigned.  At what age
Marjory joined them in England is doubtful: but it does not appear that
she was ever, as they were, an official ward of the Crown.

The exact terms on which these royal children were sent into England
were for many years the subject of sharp contention between their
brother Alexander and King Henry the Third.  The memorandum drawn up
between the Kings William and John, does not appear to be extant: but
that by which, in 1220, they were afresh consigned to the care of Henry
the Third, is still in existence.  Alexander strenuously maintained that
John had undertaken to marry the sisters to his own two sons.  The
agreement with Henry the Third simply provides that "We will also marry
[This meant at the time, `cause to be married'] Margaret and Isabel,
sisters of the said Alexander, King of Scotland, during the space of one
full year from the feast of Saint Denis [October 8], 1220, as shall be
to our honour: and if we do not marry them within that period, we will
return them to the said Alexander, King of Scotland, safe and free, in
his own territories, within two years from the time specified."  [Note
1.]

This article of the convention was honestly carried out according to the
later memorandum, so far as concerned Margaret, who was married to
Hubert de Burgh, Earl of Kent, at York, on the twenty-fifth of June,
1221.  Isabel, however, was not married (to Roger Bigod, Earl of
Norfolk) until May, 1225.  [Note 2.]  Still, after the latter date, the
convention having been carried out, it might have been supposed that the
Kings would have given over quarrelling about it.  The Princesses were
honourably married in England, which was all that Henry the Third at
least had undertaken to do.

But neither party was satisfied.  Alexander never ceased to reproach
Henry for not having himself married Margaret, and united Isabel to his
brother.  Henry, while he testily maintained to Alexander that he had
done all he promised, and no further claim could be established against
him, yet, as history shows, never to the last hour pardoned Hubert de
Burgh for his marriage with the Scottish Princess, and most bitterly
reproached him for depriving him of her whom he had intended to make his
Queen.

The truth seems to be that Henry the Third, who at the time of
Margaret's marriage was only a lad of thirteen years, had cherished for
her a fervent boyish passion, and that she was the only woman whom he
ever really loved.  Hubert, at that time Regent, probably never imagined
any thing of the kind: while to Margaret, a stately maiden of some
twenty years, if not more, the sentimental courtship of a schoolboy of
thirteen would probably be a source of amusement rather than sympathy.
But at every turn in his after life, Henry showed that he had never
forgiven this slight put on his affections.  It is true that his
affection was of a somewhat odd type, presenting no obstacle to his
aspersing the character of his lady-love, when he found it convenient to
point a moral by so doing.  But of all men who ever lived, surely one of
the most consistently inconsistent was Henry the Third.  In most
instances he was "constant to one thing--his inconstancy."  Like his
father, he possessed two virtues: but they were not the same.  Henry was
not a lover of cruelty for its own sake--which John was: and he was not
personally a libertine.  Of his father's virtues, bravery and honesty,
there was not a trace in him.  He covered his sins with an embroidered
cloak of exquisite piety.  The bad qualities of both parents were
inherited by him.  To his mother's covetous acquisitiveness and
ingrained falsehood, he joined his father's unscrupulous exactions and
wild extravagance.

I have said that Henry was not a lover of cruelty in itself: but he
could be fearfully and recklessly cruel when he had a point to gain, as
we shall see too well before the story is ended.  It may be true that
John murdered his nephew Arthur with his own hands; but it was reserved
for Henry, out of the public sight and away from his own eyes, to
perpetrate a more cruel murder upon Arthur's hapless sister, "the Pearl
of Bretagne," by one of the slowest and most dreadful deaths possible to
humanity, and without any offence on her part beyond her very existence.
Stow tells us that poor Alianora was slowly starved to death; and that
she died by royal order the Issue Roll gives evidence, since one hundred
pounds were delivered to John Fitz Geoffrey as his fee for the execution
of Alianora the King's kinswoman.  [Note 3.]

It is not easy to say whether John or Henry would have made the more
clever vivisector.  But assuredly, while John would have kept his
laboratory door open, and have sneered at anaesthetics, Henry would have
softly administered curare [Note 4], and afterwards made a charming
speech on the platform concerning the sacrifices of their own feelings,
which physiologists are sorrowfully compelled to make for the benefit of
humanity and the exigencies of science.

Thirteen years after the marriage of Margaret of Scotland, when he was a
young man of six-and-twenty, Henry the Third made a second attempt to
win a Scottish queen.  The fair Princess Marjory had now joined her
sisters in England; and in point of age she was more suitable than
Margaret.  The English nobles, however, were very indignant that their
King should think of espousing a younger sister of the wife of so mere
an upstart as Hubert de Burgh.  They grumbled bitterly, and the Count of
Bretagne, brother-in-law of the murdered Arthur and the disinherited
Alianora, took upon himself to dissuade the King from his purpose.

This Count of Bretagne is known as Pierre Mauclerc, or Bad-Clerk: not a
flattering epithet, but historians assure us that Pierre only too
thoroughly deserved the adjective, whatever his writing may have done.
He had, four years before, refused his own daughter to King Henry,
preferring to marry her to a son of the King of France.  The Count had
undertaken no difficult task, for an easier could not be than to
persuade or dissuade Henry the Third in respect of any mortal thing.  He
passed his life in acting on the advice in turn of every person who had
last spoken to him.  So he gave up Marjory of Scotland.

Three years more had elapsed since that time, during which Marjory, very
sore at her rejection, had withdrawn to the Court of King Alexander her
brother.  In the spring of 1234 she returned to her eldest sister, who
generally resided either in her husband's Town-house at Whitehall,--it
was probably near Scotland Yard--or at the Castle of Bury Saint
Edmund's.  She was just then at the latter.  Earl Hubert himself was but
rarely at home in either place, being constantly occupied elsewhere by
official duties, and not unfrequently, through some adverse turn of King
Henry's capricious favour, detained somewhere in prison.

"And how long hast thou nestled in this sweet new bower, my bird?" said
Marjory caressingly to her niece.

"To-day, Aunt Marjory!  It is a birthday present from my Lord and
father.  Is it not pretty?  Only look at the walls, and the windows, and
my beautiful velvet settle.  Now, did you ever see any thing so
charming?"

Marjory glanced at her sister, and they exchanged smiles.

"Well, I cannot quite say No to that question, Magot.  [Note 5.]  But
lead me round this wonderful chamber, and show me all its beauties."

The wonderful chamber in question was not very spacious, being about
sixteen feet in length by twelve in width.  It had a wide fireplace at
one end--there was no fire, for the spring was just passing into
summer--and two arched windows on one of its longer sides.  The
fireplace was filled with a grotto-like erection of fir-cones, moss, and
rosemary: the windows, as Margaret triumphantly pointed out, were of
that rare and precious material, glass.  Three doors led into other
rooms.  One, opposite the fireplace, gave access to a small private
oratory; two others, opposite the windows, communicated respectively
with the wardrobe and the ante-chamber.  These four rooms together, with
the narrow spiral staircase which led to them, occupied the whole floor
of one of the square towers of the Castle.  The walls of the bower were
painted green, relieved by golden stars; and on every wall-space between
the doors and windows was a painted "history"--namely, a medallion of
some Biblical, historical, or legendary subject.  The subjects in this
room had evidently been chosen with reference to the tastes of a girl.
They were,--the Virgin and Child; the legend of Saint Margaret; the
Wheel of Fortune; Saint Agnes, with her lamb; a fountain with doves
perched upon the edge; and Saint Martin dividing his cloak with the
beggar.  The window-shutters were of fir-wood, bound with iron.  Meagre
indeed we should think the furniture, but it was sumptuous for the date.
A tent-bed, hung with green curtains, stood between the two doors.  A
green velvet settle stretched across the window side of the room.  By
the fireplace was a leaf-table; round the walls were wooden brackets,
with iron sockets for the reception of torches; and at the foot of the
bed, which stood with its side to the wall, was a fine chest of carved
ebony.  There were only three pieces of movable furniture, two
footstools, and a curule chair, also of ebony, with a green velvet
cushion.  As nobody could sit in the last who had not had a king and
queen for his or her parents, it may be supposed that more than one was
not likely to be often wanted.

The Countess of Kent, as the elder sister, took the curule chair, while
her sister Marjory, when the inspection was finished, sat down on the
velvet settle.  Margaret drew a footstool to her aunt's side, and took
up her position there, resting her head caressingly on Marjory's knee.

"Three whole years, Aunt Marjory, that you have not been near us!  What
could make you stay away so long?"

"There were reasons, Magot."

The two Princesses exchanged smiles again, but there was some amusement
in that of the Countess, while the expression of her sister was rather
sad.

Margaret looked from one to the other, as if she would have liked to
understand what they meant.

"Don't trouble that little head," said her mother, with a laugh.  "Thy
time will come soon enough.  Thou art too short to be told state
secrets."

"I shall be as tall as you some day, Lady," responded Margaret archly.

"And then," said Marjory, stroking the girl's hair, "thou wilt wish
thyself back again, little Magot."

"Nay!--under your good leave, fair Aunt, never!"

"Ah, we know better, don't we, Madge?" asked the Countess, laughing.
"Well, I will leave you two maidens together.  There is the month's wash
to be seen to, and if I am not there, that Alditha is as likely to put
the linen in the chests without a sprig of rosemary, as she is to look
in the mirror every time she passes it.  We shall meet at supper.
Adieu!"

And the Countess departed, on housekeeping thoughts intent.  For a few
minutes the two girls--for the aunt was only about twelve years the
senior--sat silent, Margaret having drawn her aunt's hand down and
rested her cheek upon it.  They were very fond of one another: and being
so near in age, they had been brought up so much like sisters, that
except in one or two items they treated each other as such, and did not
assume the respective authority and reverence usual between such
relations at that time.  Beyond the employment of the deferential _you_
by Margaret, and the familiar _thou_ by Marjory, they chatted to each
other as any other girls might have done.  But just then, for a few
minutes, neither spoke.

"Well, Magot!" said Marjory, breaking the silence at last, "have we
nought to say to each other?  Thou art forgetting, I think, that I want
a full account of all these three years since I came to see thee before.
They have not been empty of events, I know."

Margaret's answer was a groan.

"Empty!" she said.  "Fair Aunt, I would they had been, rather than full
of such events as they were.  Father Nicholas saith that the old
Romans--or Greeks, I don't know which--used to say the man was happy who
had no history.  I am sure we should have been happier, lately, if we
had not had any."

"`Don't know which!'  What a heedless Magot!"

"Why, fair Aunt, surely you don't expect people to recollect lessons.
Did you ever remember yours?"

Marjory laughed.  "Sufficiently so, I hope, to know the difference
between Greeks and Romans.  But, however,--for the last three years.
Tell me all about them."

"Am I to begin with the Flood, like a professional chronicler?"

"Well, no.  I think the Conquest would be soon enough."

"Delicious Aunt Marjory!  How many weary centuries you excuse me!"

"_How_ many, Magot?"

"Oh, please don't!  How can I possibly tell?  If you really want to
know, I will send for Father Nicholas."

Marjory laughed, and kissed the lively face turned up to her.

"Idle Magot!  Well, go on."

"I don't think I am idle, fair Aunt.  But I do detest learning dates.--
Well, now,--was it in April you left us?  I know it was very soon after
my Lady of Cornwall was married, but I do not remember exactly what
month."

"It was in May," said Marjory, shortly.

"May, was it?  Oh, I know!  It was the eve of Saint Helen's Day.  Well,
things went on right enough, till my Lord of Canterbury took it into his
head that my Lord and father had no business to detain Tunbridge
Castle,--it all began with that.  It was about July, I think."

"I thought Tunbridge Castle belonged to my Lord of Gloucester.  What had
either to do with it?"

"O Aunt Marjory!  Have you forgotten that my young Lord of Gloucester is
in ward to my Lord and father?  The Lord King gave him first to my Lord
the Bishop of Winchester, when his father died; and then, about a year
after, he took him away from the Bishop, and gave him to my fair father.
Don't you remember him?--such a pretty boy!  I think you knew all about
it at the time."

"Very likely I did, Magot.  One forgets things, sometimes."

And Margaret, looking up into the fair face, saw, and did not
understand, the hidden pain behind the smile.

"So my Lord of Canterbury complained of my fair father to the Lord King.
(I wonder he could not attend to his own business.)  But the Lord King
said that as my Lord of Gloucester held in chief of the Crown, all
vacant trusts were his, to give as it pleased him.  And then--Aunt
Marjory, do you like priests?"

"Magot, what a question!"

"But do you?"

"All priests are not alike, my dear child.  They are like other people--
some good, and some bad."

"But surely all priests ought to be good."

"Art thou always what thou oughtest to be, Magot?"

Margaret's answer was a sudden spring from the stool and a fervent hug
of Marjory.

"Aunt Marjory," she said, when she had sat down again, "I just hate that
Bishop of Winchester."  [Peter de Rievaulx, always one of the two chief
enemies of Margaret's father.]

"Shocking, Magot!"

"Oh yes, of course it is extremely wicked.  But I do."

"I wish he were here, to set thee a penance for such a naughty speech.
However, go on with thy story."

"Well, what do you think, fair Aunt, that my Lord's Grace of Canterbury
[Richard Grant, consecrated in 1229] did?  He actually excommunicated
all intruders on the lands of his jurisdiction, and all who should hold
communication with them, the King only excepted; and away he went to
Rome, to lay the matter before the holy Father.  Of course he would tell
his tale from his own point of view."

"The Archbishop went to Rome!"

"Indeed he did, Aunt Marjory.  My fair father was very indignant.  `That
the head of the English Church could not stand by himself, but must seek
the approbation of a foreign Bishop!'  That was what he said, and I
think my fair mother agreed with him."

Perhaps in this nineteenth century we scarcely realise the gallant fight
made by the Church of England to retain her independence of Rome.  It
did not begin at the Reformation, as people are apt to suppose.  It was
as old as the Church herself, and she was as old as the Apostles.  Some
of her clergy were perpetually trying to force and to rivet the chains
of Rome upon her: but the body of the laity, who are really the Church,
resisted this attempt almost to the death.  There was a perpetual
struggle, greater or smaller according to circumstances, between the
King of England and the Papacy, Pope after Pope endeavoured to fill
English sees and benefices with Italian priests: King after King braved
his wrath by refusing to confirm his appointments.  Apostle, they were
ready to allow the Pope to be: sovereign or legislator, never.  Doctrine
they would accept at his hands; but he should not rule over their
secular or ecclesiastical liberties.  The quarrel between Henry the
Second and Becket was entirely on this point.  No wonder that Rome
canonised the man who thus exalted her.  The Kings who stood out most
firmly for the liberties of England were Henry the Second, John, Edward
the First and Second, and Richard the Second.  This partly explains the
reason why history (of which monks were mainly the authors) has so
little good to say of any of them, Edward the First only excepted.  It
is not easy to say why the exception was made, unless it were because he
was too firmly rooted in popular admiration, and perhaps a little too
munificent to the monastic Orders, for much evil to be discreetly said
of him.  Coeur-de-Lion was a Gallio who cared for none of those things:
Henry the Third played into the hands of the Pope to-day, and of the
Anglican Church to-morrow.  Edward the Third held the balance as nearly
even as possible.  The struggle revived faintly during the reign of
Henry the Sixth, but the Wars of the Roses turned men's minds to home
affairs, and Henry the Seventh was the obedient servant of His Holiness.
So the battle went on, till it culminated in the Reformation.  Those
who have never entered into this question, and who assume that all
Englishmen were "Papists" until 1530, have no idea how gallantly the
Church fought for her independent life, and how often she flung from off
her the iron grasp of the oppressor.  It was not probable that a
Princess whose fathers had followed the rule of Columba, and lay buried
in Protestant Iona, should have any Roman tendencies on this question.
Marjory was as warm as any one could have wished her.

"Well, then," Margaret went on, "that horrid Bishop of Winchester--"

"Oh, fie!" said her aunt.

"--Came back to England in August.  Aunt Marjory, it is no use,--he is
horrid, and I hate him!  He hates my fair father.  Do you expect me to
love him?"

"Well done, Magot!" said another voice.  "When I want a lawyer to plead
my cause, I will send for thee.--Christ save you, fair Sister!  I heard
you were here, with this piece of enthusiasm."

Both the girls rose to greet the Earl, Margaret courtesying low as
beseemed a daughter.

It was very evident that, so far as outside appearance went, Margaret
was "only the child of her mother."  Earl Hubert was scarcely so tall as
his wife, and he had a bronzed, swarthy complexion, with dark hair.
Though short, he was strongly-built and well-proportioned.  His eyes
were dark, small, but quick and exceedingly bright.  He had, when
needful, a ready, eloquent tongue and a very pleasant smile.  Yet
eloquent as undoubtedly he could be, he was not usually a man of many
words; and capable as he was of very deep and lasting affection, he was
not demonstrative.

The soft, caressing manners of the Princess Margaret were not in her
husband's line at all.  He was given to calling a spade a spade whenever
he had occasion to mention the article: and if she preferred to allude
to it as "an agricultural implement for the trituration of the soil," he
was disposed to laugh good-humouredly at the epithet, though he dearly
loved the silver voice which used it.

A thoroughly representative man of his time was Hubert de Burgh, Earl of
Kent; and he was one of those persons who leave a deep mark upon their
age.  He was a purely self-made man.  He had no pedigree: indeed, we do
not know with absolute certainty who was his father, though modern
genealogists have amused themselves by making a pedigree for him, to
which there is no real evidence that he had the least claim.  Yet of his
wives--for he was four times married--the first was an heiress, the
second a baron's widow, the third a countess in her own right and a
divorced queen, and the last a princess.  His public life had begun by
his conducting a negotiation to the satisfaction of Coeur-de-Lion, in
the first year of his reign, 1189, when in all probability Hubert was
little over twenty years of age.  From that moment he rose rapidly.
Merely to enumerate all the titles he bore would almost take a page.  He
was by turns a very rich man and a very poor one, according as his royal
and capricious master made or revoked his grants.

The religious character of Hubert is not a matter of speculation, but of
certainty.  It was--what his contemporaries considered elevated piety--a
most singular mixture of the barest and basest superstition with some
very strong plain common-sense.  The superstition was of the style set
forth in the famous Spanish drama entitled "The Devotion of the Cross"--
the true Roman type of piety, though to Protestant minds of the
nineteenth century it seems almost inconceivable.  The hero of this
play, who is represented as tinctured with nearly every crime which
humanity can commit, has a miracle performed in his favour, and goes
comfortably to Heaven after it, on account of his devotion to the cross.
The innocent reader must not suspect the least connection between this
devotion and the atonement wrought upon the cross.  It simply means,
that whenever Eusebio sees the shape of a cross--in the hilt of his
sword, the pattern of a woman's dress, two sticks thrown upon one
another,--he stops in the midst of whatever sin he may be committing,
and in some form, by word or gesture, expresses his "devotion."

Of this type was Hubert's religion.  His notion of spirituality was to
grasp the pix with one hand, and to hold the crucifix in the other.  He
kept a nicely-balanced account at the Bank of Heaven, in which--this is
historical--the heaviest deposit was the fact that he had many years
before saved a large crucifix from the flames.  The idea that this
action was not most pious and meritorious would have been in Hubert's
eyes rank heresy.  Yet he might have known better.  The Psalter lay open
to him, which, had he been acquainted with no other syllable of
revelation, should alone have given him a very different conception of
spiritual religion.

Athwart these singular notions of excellence, Hubert's good common-sense
was perpetually gleaming, like the lightning across a dark moor.
Whatever else this man was, he was no slave of Rome.  It was supported
by him, and probably at his instigation, that King John had sent his
lofty message to the Pope, that--

  "No Italian priest
  Should tithe or toll in his dominions."

It was when the administration lay in his hands that Parliament refused
to comply with the demands of the Pope till it was seen what other
kingdoms would do: and no Papal aggressions were successful in England
so long as Hubert was in power.  To reverse the famous phrase of Lord
Denbigh, Hubert was "a Catholic, if you please; but an Englishman
first."

Truer Englishman, at once loyalist and patriot, never man was than he--
well described by one of the English people as "that most faithful and
noble Hubert, who so often saved England from the ravages of the
foreigner, and restored England to herself."  He stood by the Throne,
bearing aloft the banner of England, in three especially dark and
perilous days, when no man stood there but himself.  To him alone, under
Providence, we owe it that England did not become a vassal province of
France.  Most amply was his fidelity put to the test; most unspotted it
emerged from the ordeal: most heavy was the debt of gratitude owed alike
by England and her King.

That debt was paid, in a sense, to the uttermost farthing.  In what
manner of coin it was discharged, we are about to see.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  Patent Roll, 4 Henry Third; dated York, June 15 1220.

Note 2.  "In the octave of Holy Trinity" [May 25--June 1], at Alnwick.--
Roberts' Extracts from Fines Rolls, 1225.

Note 3.  This terrible fact has been strangely ignored by many modern
historians.--_Rot.  Exit., Michs_., 25-6 Henry Third.

Note 4.  A drug which deadens the sensibilities--of the vivisector--by
rendering the victim incapable of sound or motion, but not affecting the
nerves of sensation in the least.

Note 5.  This was in 1234, when our story begins, the English diminutive
of Margaret, and was doubtless derived from the French Margot.

Note 6.  Any reader who is inclined to doubt this is requested to
consult Acts fifteen, 4, 22.  It is unquestionably the teaching of the
New Testament.  The clergy form part of the Church merely as individual
Christians.



CHAPTER TWO.

"WHAT DO YOU LACK?"

  "If pestilence stalk through the land, ye say, This is God's doing.
  Is it not also His doing, when an aphis creepeth on a rosebud?"

  _Martin F. Tupper_.

Earl Hubert was far too busy a man to waste his time in lounging on
velvet settles and exchanging sallies of wit with the ladies of his
household.  He had done little more than give a cordial welcome to
Marjory, and pat Margaret on the head, when he again disappeared, to be
seen no more until supper-time.

"Well, Magot," said Marjory, sitting down in the chair, while Margaret
as before accommodated herself with a footstool at her feet, "let us get
on with thy story.  I want to know all about that affair two years ago.
Thy fair father looks wonderfully well, methinks, considering all that
he has gone through."

"Does he not?  O Aunt Marjory, I scarcely know how I am to tell you
about that.  It was dreadful,--dreadful!"

And the tears stood in big drops on Margaret's eyelashes.

"Well, I will try," she said, with a deep sigh, as Marjory stroked her
hair.  "In the first place, the year ended all very well.  My fair
father had been created Justiciary of Ireland for life, and Constable of
the Tower, and various favours had been granted to him.  That he should
be on the brink of trouble--and such trouble!--was the very last thing
thought of by any one of us.  And then that Bishop of Winchester came
back, and before a soul knew anything about it, he was high in the Lord
King's favour, and on the twenty-ninth of July--(I am not likely to
forget _that_ date!)--the blow fell."

"He was dismissed, then, was he not, from all his offices, without a
word of warning?"

"Dismissed and degraded, without a shadow of it!--and a string of the
most cruel, wicked accusations brought against him--things that he never
did nor dreamed of doing--Aunt Marjory, it makes my blood boil, only to
remember them!  I am not going to tell you all: there was one too horrid
to mention."

"I know, my maiden."  Marjory interposed rather hastily.  She had heard
already of King Henry's delicate and affectionate assault upon the fair
name of Margaret's mother, and she did not wish for a repetition of it.

"But beyond that, of what do you think he was accused?"

"I have not heard the other articles, Magot."

"Then I will tell you.  First, of preventing the Lord King's marriage
with the Duke of Austria's daughter, by telling the Duke that the King
was lame, and blind, and deaf, and a leper, and--"

"Gently, Magot, gently!" said Marjory, laughing.

"I am not making a syllable of it, fair Aunt!--And that he was a wicked,
treacherous man, not worthy of the love or alliance of any noble lady.
_Pure foy_!--but I know what I should say, if I said just what I think."

"It is sometimes quite as well not to do that, Magot."

"Ha!  Perhaps it is, when one may get into prison by it.  It is a
comfort one can always think.  Neither Pope nor King can stop that."

"Magot, my dear child!"

"Oh yes, I know!  You think I am horribly imprudent, Aunt Marjory.  But
nobody hears me except you and Eva de Braose--she is the only person in
the wardrobe, and there is no one in the ante-chamber.  And as I have
heard her say more than I did just now, I don't suppose there is much
harm done.--Then, secondly,--they charged my fair father with stealing--
only think, _stealing_!--a magical gem from the royal treasury which
made the wearer victorious in battle, and sending it to the Prince of
Wales."  [Llywelyn the Great, with whom King Henry was at war.]

"Why should they suppose he would do that?"

"_Pure foy_, Aunt Marjory, don't ask me!  Then, thirdly, they said it
was--"

Margaret sprang from her footstool suddenly, and disappeared for a
second through the door of the wardrobe.  Marjory heard her say--

"Eva!  I had completely forgotten, till this minute, to tell Marie that
my Lady and mother desired her to finish that piece of tapestry
to-night, if she can.  Do go and look for her, and let her know, or she
will not have time."

A slight rustle as of some one leaving the room was audible, and then
Margaret dashed back to her footstool, as if she too had not a minute to
lose.

"You know, Aunt Marjory, I could not tell you the next thing with Eva
listening.  They said that it was by traitorous letters from my fair
father that the Prince of Wales had caused Sir William de Braose to be
hung."

"Eva's father, thou meanest?"

"Yes.  Then they accused him of administering poison to my Lord of
Salisbury, of sending my cousin Sir Raymond to try and force the Lady of
Salisbury into marrying him while her lord was beyond seas, of poisoning
my Lord of Pembroke, Sir Fulk de Breaut, and my sometime Lord of
Canterbury's Grace.  He might have spent his life in poisoning every
body!  Then, lastly, they said he had obtained favour of the Lord King
by help of the black art."

Marjory smiled contemptuously.  It was not because she was more free
from superstition than other people, but simply because she knew full
well that the only sorcery necessary to be used towards Henry the Third
was "the sorcery of a strong mind over a weak one."  [Note 1.]

"It was rather unfortunate," she said, "that my good Lord of Salisbury
(whom God rest!) was seized with his last illness the very day after he
had supped at my fair brother's table."

"Aunt Marjory!" cried her indignant niece.  "Why, it is not a month
since I was taken ill in the night, after I had supped likewise.  Do you
suppose he poisoned me?"

"It is quite possible that walnuts might have something to do with it,
Magot.  But did I say he poisoned any one?"

"Now, Aunt Marjory, you are laughing at me, because you know I like
them.  But don't you think it is absurd--the way in which people insist
on fancying themselves poisoned whenever they are ill?  It looks as if
every human being were a monster of wickedness!"

"What would Father Warner say they are, Magot?"

"Oh, he would say it was perfectly true: and he would be right--so far
as my Lord of Winchester and a few more are concerned.--Well, Eva, hast
thou found Marie?"

"Yes, my dear.  She is with the Lady, and she is busy with the
tapestry."

"Oh, that is right!  I am sorry I forgot."

"And the Lady bade me tell thee, _mignonne_, that she is coming to thy
bower shortly, with a pedlar who is waiting in the court, to choose
stuffs for thy Whitsuntide robes."

"A pedlar!  Delightful!  Aunt Marjory, I am sure you want something?"

Marjory laughed.  "I want thy tale finished, Magot, before the pedlar
comes."

"Too long, my dear Aunt Marjory, unless the pedlar takes all summer to
mount the stairs.  But you know my Lord and father fled into sanctuary
at Merton Abbey, and refused to leave it unless the Lord King would
pledge his royal word for his safety.  I don't think I should have
thought it made much difference.  (I wonder if that pedlar has any
silversmiths' work.)  The Lord King did not pledge his word, but he
ordered the Lord Mayor and the citizens to fetch my fair father--only
think of that, Aunt Marjory!--dead or alive.  Some of the nobler
citizens appealed to the Bishop, who was everything with the King just
then: but instead of interceding for my fair father, as they asked, he
merely confirmed the order.  So twenty thousand citizens marched on the
Abbey; and when my fair father knew that, he fled to the high altar, and
embraced the holy cross with one hand, holding the blessed pix in the
other."

"Was our Lord in the pix?" inquired Marjory--meaning, of course, to
refer to the consecrated wafer.

"I am not sure, fair Aunt.  But however, things turned out better than
seemed likely: for not only the Bishop of Chichester, but even my Lord
of Chester--my fair father's great enemy--interceded with the Lord King
in his behalf.  We heard that my Lord of Chester spoke very plainly to
him, and told him not only that he would find it easier to draw a crowd
together than to get rid of it again, but also that his fickleness would
scandalise the world."

"And the Lord King allowed him to say that?"

"Yes, and it had a great effect upon him.  I think people who are fickle
don't like others to see it--don't you?  Do you think that pedlar will
have any sendal [a silk stuff of extremely fine quality] of India?"

"Thine eyes and half thy tongue are in the pedlar's pack, Magot.  I
cannot tell thee.  But just let me know how it ended, and thy fair
father was set free."

"Oh, it did not end for ever so long!  My Lord's Grace of Dublin got
leave for him to come home and see my fair mother and me; and after
that, when he had gone into Essex, the King sent after him again, and
Sir Godfrey de Craucumbe took him away to the Tower.  They sent for a
smith to put him in fetters, but the man would not do it when he heard
who was to wear the fetters.  He said he would rather die than be the
man to put chains on `that most faithful and noble Hubert, who so often
saved England from the ravages of foreigners, and restored England to
herself.'  Aunt Marjory, I think he was a grand fellow!  I would have
kissed him if I had been there."

As the kiss was at that time the common form of greeting between men and
women, for a lady to offer a kiss to a man as a token that she approved
his words or actions, was not then considered more demonstrative than it
would be to shake hands now.  It was, in fact, not an unusual
occurrence.

"And my fair father told us," pursued Margaret, "when he heard what the
smith said, he could not help thinking of those words of our Lord, when
He thanked God that His mission had been hidden from the wise, but
revealed to the ignorant.  `For,' our Lord said, `to Thee, my God, do I
commit my cause; for mine enemies have risen against me.'"  [Note 2.]

"And they took him to the Tower of London?"

"Yes, but the Bishop of London was very angry at the violation of
sanctuary, and insisted that my fair father should be sent back.  He
threatened the King with excommunication, and of course that frightened
him.  He sent him back to the church whence he was taken, but commanded
the Sheriff of Essex to surround the church, so that he should neither
escape nor obtain food.  But my fair father's true friend, my good old
Lord of Dublin--(you were right, Aunt Marjory; all priests are not
alike)--interposed, and begged the Lord King to do to him what he had
thought to do to my Lord and father.  The Lord King then offered the
choice of three things:--my Lord and father must either abjure the
kingdom for ever, or he must be perpetually imprisoned, or he must
openly confess himself a traitor."

"A fair choice, surely!"

"Horrid, wasn't it?"

"He chose banishment, did he not?"

"He said, if the King willed it, he was content to go out of England for
a time,--not for ever: but a traitor he would never confess himself, for
he had never been one."

"The words of a true man!" said Marjory.

"Splendid!--and then (Eva!--is that pedlar never coming up?) the Lord
King found out that my fair father had laid up treasure in the Temple,
and he actually accused him of taking it fraudulently from the royal
treasury, and summoned him to resign it.  My fair father replied (I
shouldn't have done!) that he and all he had were at the King's
pleasure, and sent an order to the Master of the Temple accordingly.
Then--O Aunt Marjory, it is too long a tale to tell!--and I want that
pedlar.  But I do think it was a shame, after all that, for the Lord
King to profess to compassionate my Lord and father, and to say that he
had been faithful to our Lord King John of happy memory, [Note 3] and
also to our Lord King Richard (whom God pardon!); therefore,
notwithstanding the ill-usage of himself, and the harm he had done the
kingdom, he would rather pardon my fair father than execute him.  `For,'
he said, `I would rather be accounted a remiss king than a man of
blood.'"

"Well, that does not sound bad, Magot."

"Oh no!  Words are very nice things, Aunt Marjory.  And our Lord King
Henry can string them very prettily together.  I have no patience--I
say, Eva!  Do go and peep into the court and see what is becoming of
that snail of a pedlar!"

"He is in the hall, eating and drinking, Margaret."

"Well, I am sure he has had as much as is good for him!--So then, Aunt
Marjory, my fair father was sent to Devizes: and many nobles became
sureties for him,--my Lord of Cornwall, the King's brother, among
others.  And while he was there, he heard of the death of his great
enemy, my Lord of Chester.  Then he said, `The Lord be merciful to him:
he was my man by his own doing, and yet he never did me good where he
could work me harm.'  And he set himself before the holy cross, and sang
over the whole Psalter for my Lord of Chester.  Well, after that,--I
cannot go into all the ups and downs of the matter,--but after a while,
by the help of some of the garrison, my fair father contrived to escape
from Devizes, and joined the Prince of Wales.  That was last November;
and he stayed in Wales until the King's journey to Gloucester.  Last
March the Lord King came here to the Abbey, and he granted several
manors to my fair mother: and she took the opportunity to plead for my
Lord and father.  So when the Lord King went to Gloucester, he was met
by my Lord's Grace of Canterbury, who had been to treat with the Prince
of Wales, and by his advice all those who had been outlawed, and had
sought refuge in Wales, were to be pardoned and received to favour.  One
of them, of course, was my fair father.  So they met the Lord King at
Gloucester, and he took them to his mercy.  My Lord and father said the
Lord King looked calmly on them, and gave them the kiss of peace.  But
my fair father himself was so much struck by the manner in which our
Lord had repaid him his good deeds, that, as his varlet Adam told us, he
clasped his hands, and looked up to Heaven, and he said,--`O Jesus,
crucified Saviour, I once when sleeping saw Thee on the cross, pierced
with bloody wounds, and on the following day, according to Thy warning,
I spared Thy image and worshipped it: and now Thou hast, in Thy favour,
repaid me for so doing, in a lucky moment.'"

It did not strike either Marjory or Margaret, as perhaps it may the
reader, that this speech presented a very curious medley of devotion,
thankfulness, barefaced idolatry, and belief in dreams and lucky
moments.  To their minds the mixture was perfectly natural.  So much so,
that Marjory's response was--

"Doubtless it was so, Magot.  It is always very unlucky to neglect a
dream."

At this juncture Eva de Braose presented herself.  She was one of three
maidens who were alike--as was then customary--wards of the Earl, and
waiting-maids of the Countess.  They were all young ladies of high birth
and good fortune, orphan heirs or co-heirs, whose usual lot it was,
throughout the Middle Ages, to be given in wardship to some nobleman,
and educated with his daughters.  Eva de Braose, Marie de Lusignan, and
Doucebelle de Vaux, [Eva and Marie (but not Doucebelle) are historical
persons,] were therefore the social equals and constant companions of
Margaret.  Eva was a rather pretty, fair-haired girl, about two years
older than our heroine.

"The pedlar is coming now, Margaret."

"_Ha, jolife_!" cried Margaret.  [Note 4.] "Is my Lady and mother
coming?"

"Yes, and both Hawise and Marie."

Hawise de Lanvalay was the young wife of Margaret's eldest brother.
Earl Hubert's family consisted, beside his daughter, of two sons of his
first marriage, John and Hubert, who were respectively about eighteen
and fifteen years older than their sister.

The Countess entered in a moment, bringing with her the young Lady
Hawise,--a quiet-looking, dark-eyed girl of some eighteen years; and
Marie, the little Countess of Eu, who was only a child of eleven.  After
them came Levina, one of the Countess's dressers, and two sturdy
varlets, carrying the pedlar's heavy pack between them.  The pedlar
himself followed in the rear.  He was a very respectable-looking old
man, with strongly-marked aquiline features and long white beard; and he
brought with him a lithe, olive-complexioned youth of about eighteen
years of age.

The varlets set down the pack on the floor, and departed.  The old man
unstrapped it, and opening it out with the youth's help, proceeded to
display his goods.  Very rich, costly, and beautiful they were.  The
finest lawn of Cambray (whence comes "cambric"), and the purest sheeting
of Rennes, formed a background on which were exhibited rich diapered
stuffs from Damascus, crape of all colours from Cyprus, golden baudekyns
from Constantinople, fine sendal from India, with satins, velvets,
silks, taffetas, linen and woollen stuffs, in bewildering profusion.
Over these again were laid rich furs,--sable, ermine, miniver, black
fox, squirrel, marten, and lamb; and trimmings of gold and silver, gimp
and beads, delicate embroidery, and heavy tinsel.

"Here, Lady, is a lovely thing in changeable sendal," said the old man,
hunting for it among his silks: "it would be charming for the
fair-haired damsel--(lift off that fox fur, Cress),--blue and gold.  Or
here,--a striped tartaryn, which would suit the dark young lady,--orange
and green.  Then--(Cress, give me the silver frieze),--this, Lady, would
be well for the little maid, for somewhat cooler weather.  And will my
Lady see the Cyprus?  (Hand the pink one, Cress.)  This would make up
enchantingly for the damsel that was in my Lady's chamber."

"Where is Doucebelle?" asked the Countess, looking round.  "I thought
she had come.  Marie, run and fetch her.--Hast thou any broidery-work of
the East Country, good man?"

"One or two small things, Lady.--Cress, give me thy sister's scarves."

The young man unfolded a woollen wrapper, and then a lawn one inside it,
and handed to his father three silken scarves, of superlatively fine
texture, and covered with most exquisite embroidery.  Even the Countess,
accustomed as her eyes were to beautiful things, was not able to
suppress an admiring ejaculation.

"This _is_ lovely!" she said.

"Those are samples," remarked the pedlar, with a gleam of pleasure in
his eyes.  "I have more, of various patterns, if my Lady would wish to
see them.  She has only to speak her commands."

"Yes.  But--these are all imported, I suppose?"

"All imported, such as I have shown to my Lady."

"I presume no broideress is to be found in England, who can do such work
as this?" said the Countess in a regretful tone.

"Did my Lady wish to find one?"

"I wished to have a scarf in my possession copied, with a few variations
which I would order.  But I fear it cannot be done--it would be almost
necessary that I should see the broideress myself, to avoid mistakes;
and I would fain, if it were possible, have had the work done under my
own eye."

"That might be done, perhaps.  It would be costly."

"Oh, I should not care for the cost.  I want the scarf for a gift; and
it is nothing to me whether I pay ten silver pennies or a hundred."

"Would my Lady suffer her servant to see the scarf she wishes to have
imitated?"

"Fetch it, Levina," said the Countess; "thou knowest which I mean."

Levina brought it, and the pedlar gave it very careful inspection.

"And the alterations?" he asked.

"I would have a row of silver harebells and green ferns, touched with
gold, as an outer border," explained the Countess: "and instead of those
ornaments in the inner part, I would have golden scrolls, worked with
the words `Dieu et mon droit' in scarlet."

The pedlar shook his head.  "The golden scrolls with the words can be
done, without difficulty.  But I must in all humility represent to my
Lady that the flowers and leaves she desires cannot."

"Why?" asked the Countess in a surprised tone.

"Not in this work," answered the pedlar.  "In this style of
embroidery"--and he took another scarf from his pack--"it could be
wrought: but not in the other."

"But that is not to be compared with the other!"

"My Lady has well said," returned the pedlar with a smile.

"But I do not understand where the difficulty lies?" said the Countess,
evidently disappointed.

"Let my Lady pardon her servant.  We have in our company--nay, there is
in all England--one broideress only, who can work in this style.  And I
dare not make such an engagement on her behalf."

"Still I cannot understand for what reason?"

"Lady, these flowers, leaves, heads, and such representations of created
things, are the work of Christian hands.  That broidery which my Lady
desires is not so."

"But why cannot Christians work this broidery?"

"Ha!  They do not.  My Lady's servant cannot speak further."

"Then what is she who alone can do this work?  What eyes and fingers she
must have!"

"She is my daughter," answered the pedlar, rather proudly.

"But I am sure the woman who can broider like this, is clever enough to
make a row of harebells and ferns!"

"Clever enough,--oh yes!  But--she could not do it."

"`Clever enough,' but `could not do it'--old man, I cannot understand
thee."

"Lady, she would account it sin to imitate created things."

The Countess looked up with undisguised amazement.

"Why?"

"Because the Holy One has forbidden us to make to ourselves any likeness
of that which is in heaven above, or in the earth beneath."

"But I would pay her any sum she asked."

"If my Lady can buy Christian consciences with gold, not so a daughter
of Israel."

The old man spoke proudly now, and his head was uplifted in a very
different style from his previous subservient manner.  His son's lip was
curled, and his black eyes were flashing fire.

"Well!  I do not understand it," answered the Countess, looking as much
annoyed as the sweet Princess Margaret knew how to look.  "I should have
thought thy daughter might have put her fancies aside; for what harm can
there be in broidering flowers?  However, if she will not, she will not.
She must work me a border of some other pattern, for I want the scarf
wider."

"That she can do, as my Lady may command."  The old Jew was once more
the obsequious tradesman, laying himself out to please a profitable
customer.

"What will be the cost, if the scarf be three ells in length, and--let
me see--about half an ell broad?"

"It could not be done under fifteen gold pennies, my Lady."

"That is costly!  Well, never mind.  If people want to make rich gifts,
they must pay for them.  But could I have it by Whitsuntide?--that is, a
few days earlier, so as to make the gift then."

The pedlar reflected for a moment.

"Let my Lady pardon her servant if he cannot give that answer at this
moment.  If my daughter have no work promised, so that she can give her
time entirely to this, it can be done without fail.  But it is some days
since my Lady's servant saw her, and she may have made some engagement
since."

"I am the better pleased thou art not too ready to promise," said the
Countess, smiling.  "But what about the work being done under my eye?  I
will lodge thy daughter, and feed her, and give her a gold penny extra
for it."

The old Jew looked very grave.

"Let my Lady not be angered with the lowest of her servants!  But--we
are of another religion."

"Art thou afraid of my converting her?" asked the Countess, in an amused
tone.

"Under my Lady's pardon--no!" said the old man, proudly.  "I can trust
my daughter.  And if my noble Lady will make three promises on
whatsoever she holds most holy, the girl shall come."

"She should be worth having, when she is so hard to get at!" responded
the Countess, laughing, as she took from her bosom a beautiful little
silver crucifix, suspended by a chain of the same material from her
neck, "Now then, old man, what am I to swear?"

"First, that my daughter shall not be required to work in any manner on
the holy Sabbath,--namely, as my Lady will understand it, from sunset on
Friday until the same hour on Saturday."

"That I expected.  I know Jews are very precise about their Sabbaths.
Very well,--so that the scarf be finished by Wednesday before
Whitsuntide, that I swear."

"Secondly, by my Lady's leave, that she shall not be compelled to eat
any thing contrary to our law."

"I have no desire to compel her.  But what will she eat?  I must know
that I can give her something."

"Any kind of vegetables, bread, milk, and eggs."

"Lenten fare.  Very well.  I swear it."

"Lastly, that my Lady will appoint her a place in her own apartments, or
in those of the damsel her daughter, and that she may never stir out of
that tower while she remains in the Castle."

"Poor young prisoner!  Good.  If thou art so anxious to consign thy
child to hard durance, I will swear to keep her in it."

"May my Lady's servant ask where she will be?"

The Countess laughed merrily.  "This priceless treasure of thine!  She
might be a king's daughter.  I will put her in my daughter's
ante-chamber, just behind thee."

The pedlar walked into the ante-chamber, and inspected it carefully, to
the great amusement of the ladies.

"It is enough," he said, returning.  "Lady, my child is not a king's
daughter, but she is the dearest treasure of her old father's heart."

The old man had well spoken, for his words, Jew as he was--a creature,
according to the views of that day, born to be despised and
ill-treated--went straight to the tender heart of the Princess Margaret.

"'Tis but nature," she said softly.  "Have no fear, old man: I will take
care of thy treasure.  What is her name?"

"Will my Lady suffer her grateful servant to kiss her robe?  I am
Abraham of Norwich, and my daughter's name is Belasez."

Singular indeed were the Jewish names common at this time, beyond a very
few Biblical ones, of which the chief were Abraham, Aaron, and Moses--
the last usually corrupted to Moss or Mossy.  They were, for men,--
Delecresse ("Dieu le croisse"), Ursel, Leo, Hamon, Kokorell, Emendant,
and Bonamy:--for women,--Belasez ("Belle assez"), Floria, Licorice
(these three were the most frequent), Esterote, Cuntessa, Belia, Anegay,
Rosia, Genta, and Pucella.  They used no surnames beyond the name of the
town in which they lived.

"And what years has she?" asked the Countess.

"Seventeen, if it please my Lady."

"Good.  I hope she will be clever and tractable.--Now, Madge, what do
_you_ want?"

The Princess Marjory wanted a silver necklace, a piece of green silk for
a state robe, and some unshorn wool for an every-day dress, beside
lamb's fur and buttons for trimming.  Buttons were fashionable ornaments
in those days, and it was not unusual to spend six or eight dozen upon
one dress.

"Now, Magot, let me see for thee," said her mother.  "Thy two woollen
gowns must be shorn for winter, and thou wilt want a velvet one for gala
days: but there is time for that by and bye.  What thou needest now is a
blue Cyprus [crape] robe for thy best summer one, two garments of
coloured thread for common, a silk hood, one or two lawn wimples [Note
5], and a pair of corsets.  [Note 6.]  Thou mayest have a new armilaus
[Note 7] if thou wilt."

"And may I not have a new mantle?" was Margaret's answer, in a coaxing
tone.

"A new mantle?  Thou unconscionable Magot!  Somebody will be ruined
before thy wants are supplied."

"And a red velvet gipciere, Lady?  And I _did_ so want a veil of sendal
of Inde!"

"Worse and worse!  Come, old man, prithee, measure off the Cyprus, and
look out the wimples quickly, or this damsel of mine will leave me never
a farthing in my pocket."

"And Eva wants a new gown," suggested Margaret.

"Oh yes!" said the Countess, laughing.  "And so does Marie, and so does
Doucebelle, I suppose,--and Hawise, I have no doubt.  I shall be
completely ruined among you!"

"But my Lady will give me the sendal of Inde?  I will try to do without
the gipciere."

A gipciere was a velvet bag dependent from the waist, which served as a
purse or pocket, as occasion required.

"Magot, hast thou no conscience?  Come, then, old man, let this
unreasonable damsel see thy gipcieres.  And if she must have some sendal
of Inde, well,--fate is inevitable.  What was the other thing, Magot?  A
new mantle?  Oh, shocking!  I can't afford that.  What is the price of
thy black cloth, old man?"

It was easy to see that Margaret would have all she chose to ask,
without much pressure.  Some linen dresses were also purchased for the
young wards of the Earl,--a blue fillet for Eva, and a new barm-cloth
[apron] for Marie; and the Countess having chosen some sendal and lawn
for her own use, the purchases were at last completed.

The old Jew, helped by Delecresse, repacked his wares with such care as
their delicacy and costliness required, and the Countess desired Levina
to summon the varlets to bear the heavy burden down to the gate.

"Peace wait on my Lady!" said the pedlar, bowing low as he took leave.
"If it please the Holy One, my Belasez shall be here at my Lady's
command before a week is over."

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  This was the answer given to her judges, four hundred years
later, by Leonora Galigai, when she was asked to confess what kind of
magic she had employed to obtain the favour of Queen Maria de' Medici.

Note 2.  The Earl's quotation from Scripture was extremely free,
combining Matthew eleven verse 25 with the substance, but not the exact
words, of several passages in the Psalms.  Nor did Friar Matthew Paris
know much better, since he refers to it all as "that passage in the
Gospels."

Note 3.  King Henry was given to allusions of this class, to the revered
memory of his excellent father.

Note 4.  "Oh, delightful!"  The modern schoolboy's "How jolly" is really
a corruption of this.  The companion regret was "Ha, chetife!"--("Oh,
miserable!")

Note 5.  The wimple covered the neck, and was worn chiefly out of doors.
Ladies from a queen to a countess wore it coming over the chin; women
of less rank, beneath.

Note 6.  Tight-lacing dates from about the twelfth century.

Note 7.  A short cloak, worn by both sexes, ornamented with buttons.



CHAPTER THREE.

BELASEZ.

  "And, born of Thee, she may not always take
  Earth's accents for the oracles of God."

  _Felicia Hemans_.

The last word had scarcely left the pedlar's lips, when the door of the
ante-chamber was flung open, and a boy of Margaret's age burst into the
room.

He was fair-haired and bright-faced, with a slender, elegant figure, and
all his motions were very agile.  Beginning with--"I say, Magot!"--he
stopped suddenly both tongue and feet as he caught sight of the
Countess.

"Well, Sir Richard?" suggested that lady.

"I cry you mercy, Lady.  I did not know you were here."

"And if you had done--what then?"

"Why, then," answered Richard, laughing but colouring, "I suppose I
ought to have come in more quietly."

"Ah!  Did you ever read with Father Nicholas about an old man who said
that the Athenians knew what was right, but the Lacedemonians did it?"

"Your pardon, Lady!  I always forget what I read with Father Nicholas."

"I should suppose so.  I am afraid there is Athenian blood in your
veins, Sir Richard!"

"Lady, if it stand with your pleasure, there is none but true Christian
blood in my veins!" was the proud reply.

"_Pure foy_!  If you are so proud of your blood, I fear you will disdain
to do what I was about to bid you."

"I shall never disdain to execute the commands of a fair lady."

"My word, Sir Richard, but you are growing a courtly knight!  You see
that Jew boy has left his cap behind.  As there are none here but
damsels, I was thinking I would ask you to call him back to fetch it."

"He shall have it--a Jew boy!  I'll take the tongs, then!"

The next minute Delecresse, who was just turning back to fetch the
forgotten cap, heard a boyish voice calling to him out of a window, and
looking up, saw his cap held out in the tongs.

"Here, thou cur of a Jew!  What dost thou mean, to leave thy heathen
stuff in the chamber of a noble damsel?"

And the cap was dropped into the courtyard, with such good aim that it
first hit Delecresse on the head, and then lodged itself in the midst of
a puddle.

Delecresse, without uttering a word, yet flushing red even through his
dark complexion, deliberately stooped, recovered his wet cap, and placed
it on his head, pressing it firmly down as if he wished to impart the
moisture to his hair.  Then he turned and looked fixedly at Richard, who
was watching him with an amused face.

"That wasn't a bad shot, was it?" cried the younger lad.

"Thank you," was the answer of Delecresse.  "I shall know you again!"

The affront was a boyish freak, perpetrated rather in thoughtlessness
than malice: but the tone of the answer, however simple the words,
manifestly breathed revenge.  Richard de Clare was not an ill-natured
boy.  But he had been taught from his babyhood that a Jew was the scum
of the earth, and that to speak contumeliously to such was so far from
being wrong, that it absolutely savoured of piety.  _Jews_ had crucified
Christ.  To have aided one of them, or to have been over civil to him,
would in a Christian have been considered as putting a slight upon his
Lord.  There was, therefore, some excuse for Richard, educated as he had
been in this belief.

Delecresse, on the contrary, had been as carefully brought up in the
opposite conviction.  To him it was the Gentile who was the refuse of
humanity, and it was a perpetual humiliation to be forced to cringe to,
and wait upon, such contemptible creatures.  Moreover, the day was
coming when their positions should be reversed; and who could say how
near it was at hand?  Then the proud Christian noble would be the slave
of the despised Jew pedlar, and--thought Delecresse, grinding his
teeth--he at least would take care that the Christian slave should
indulge no mistakes on that point.

To both the youths Satan was whispering, and by both he was obeyed.  And
each of them was positively convinced that he was serving God.

The vengeful words of Delecresse made no impression whatever on the
young Earl of Gloucester.  He would have laughed with scorn at the mere
idea that such an insect as that could have any power to hurt him.  He
danced back to Margaret's bower, where, in a few minutes, he, she,
Marie, and Eva were engaged in a merry round game.

Beside the three girls who were in the care of the Countess, Earl Hubert
had also three boy-wards--Richard de Clare, heir of the earldom of
Gloucester; Roger de Mowbray, heir of the barony of Mowbray, now about
fifteen years old; and John de Averenches (or Avranches), the son of a
knight.  With these six, the Earl's two sons, his daughter, and his
daughter-in-law, there was no lack of young people in the Castle, of
whom Sir John de Burgh, the eldest, was only twenty-nine.

The promise made by Abraham of Norwich was faithfully kept.  A week had
not quite elapsed when Levina announced to the Countess that the Jew
pedlar and the maiden his daughter awaited her pleasure in the court.
The Countess desired her to bring them up immediately to Margaret's
bower, whither she would go herself to meet them.

Margaret and Doucebelle had just come in from a walk upon the leads--the
usual way in which ladies took airings in the thirteenth century.
Indeed, the leads were the only safe and proper place for a young girl's
out-door recreation.  The courtyard was always filled by the household
servants and soldiers of the garrison: and the idea of taking a walk
outside the precincts of the Castle, would never have occurred to
anybody, unless it were to a very ignorant child indeed.  There were no
safe highroads, nor quiet lanes, in those days, where a maiden might
wander without fear of molestation.  Old ballads are full of accounts of
the perils incurred by rash and self-sufficient girls who ventured alone
out of doors in their innocent ignorance or imprudent bravado.  The
roadless wastes gave harbour to abundance of fierce small animals and
deadly vipers, and to men worse than any of them.

Old Abraham, cap in hand, bowed low before the Princess, and presented a
closely-veiled, graceful figure, as the young broideress whom he had
promised.

"Lay thy veil aside, my maid," said the Countess, with most unusual
kindness, considering that it was a Jewess to whom she spoke.

The maiden obeyed, and revealed to the eyes of the Princess and her
damsels a face and figure of such extreme loveliness that she no longer
wondered at the anxiety of her father to provide for her concealment.
But the beauty of Belasez was of an entirely different type from that of
the Christians around her.  Her complexion was olive, her hair raven
black, her eyes large and dark, now melting as if in liquid light, now
brilliant and full of fire.  And if Margaret looked two years beyond her
real age, Belasez looked more like seven.

"Thou knowest wherefore thou art come hither?" asked the Countess,
smiling complacently on the vision before her.

"To broider for my Lady," said Belasez, in a low, clear, musical voice.

"And wilt thou obey my orders?"

"I will obey my Lady in every thing not forbidden by the holy law."

"Well, I think we shall agree, my maid," returned the Countess, whose
private views respecting religious tolerance were something quite
extraordinary for the time at which she lived.  "I would not willingly
coerce any person's conscience.  But as I do not know thy law, thou wilt
have to tell me if I should desire thee to do some forbidden thing."

"My Lady is very good to her handmaiden," said Belasez.

"Margaret, take the maid into thy wardrobe for a little while, until she
has dined; and after that I will show her what I require.  She will be
glad of rest after her journey."

Margaret obeyed, and a motion of her mother's hand sent Doucebelle after
her.  The daughter of the house sat down on the settle which stretched
below the window, and Doucebelle followed her example: but Belasez
remained standing.

"Come and sit here by me," said Margaret to the young Jewess.  "I want
to talk to thee."

Belasez obeyed in silence.

"Art thou very tired with thy journey?"

"Not now, damsel, I thank you.  We have come but a short stage this
morning."

"Art thou fond of broidery?"

"I love everything beautiful."

"And nothing that is not beautiful?"

"I did not say that, damsel."  Belasez's smile showed a perfect row of
snow-white teeth.

"Am I fair enough to love?" asked Margaret laughingly.  She had a good
deal of her mother's easy tolerance of differences, and all her sweet
affability to those beneath her.

"Ah, my damsel, true love regards the heart rather than the face,
methinks.  I cannot see into my damsel's heart in one minute, but I
should think it was not at all difficult to love her."

"I want every body to love me," said Margaret.  "And I love every body."

"If my damsel would permit me to counsel her,--love every body by all
means: but do not let her want every body to love her."

"Why not?"

"Because I fear my damsel will meet with disappointment."

"Oh, I hate to be disappointed.  Hast thou brought thine image with
thee?"

To Margaret this question sounded most natural.  In the first place, she
could not conceive the idea of prayer without something visible to pray
to: and in the second, she had been taught that all Jews and Saracens
were idolaters.  She was surprised to see the blood rush to Belasez's
dark cheek, and the fire flash from her eyes.

"Will my damsel allow me to ask what she means?  I do not understand."

"Wilt thou not want to say thy prayers whilst thou art here?" responded
Margaret, who was at least as much puzzled as Belasez.

"Most certainly! but not to an image!"

"Oh, do you Jews sometimes pray without images?"

"Does my damsel take us for idolaters?"

"Yes, I was always told so," said Margaret, looking astonished.

The fire died out of Belasez's eyes.  She saw that Margaret had simply
made an innocent mistake from sheer ignorance of the question.

"My damsel has been misinformed.  We Israelites hold all images to be
wicked, and abhorrent to the holy law."

"Then thou wilt not want to set up an idol for thyself anywhere?"

"Most assuredly not."

"I hope I have not vexed thee," said Margaret, ingenuously.  "I did not
know."

"My damsel did not vex me, as soon as I saw that she did not know."

"And wouldst thou not like better to be a Christian than a Jew?"
demanded Margaret, who could not imagine the possibility of any feeling
on Belasez's part regarding her nationality except those of regret and
humiliation.

But the answer, though it came in a single syllable, was unmistakable.
Intense pride, passionate devotion to her own creed and people, the
deepest scorn and loathing for all others, combined to make up the tone
of Belasez's "No!"

"How very odd!" exclaimed Margaret, looking at her, with an expression
of great astonishment upon her own fair, open features.

"Is it odd to my damsel?  Does she know what her question sounded like,
to me?"

"Tell me."

"`Would she not like better to be a villein scullion-maid, than to be
the daughter of my noble Lord of Kent?'"

"But Jews are not noble!" cried Margaret, gazing in bewilderment from
Belasez to Doucebelle, as if she expected one of them to help her out of
the puzzle.

"Not in the world's estimate," answered Belasez.  "There is One above
the world."

Before Margaret could reply, the deep bass "Ding-dong!" of the great
dinner-bell rang through the Castle, and Levina made her appearance at
the door.

"My Lady has given me charge concerning thee, Belasez," she said, rather
coldly addressing the Jewess.  "Thou wilt come with me."

With a graceful reverence to Margaret, Belasez turned, and followed
Levina.

At that date, no titles except those of nobility or office were usual in
England.  Any woman below a peer's daughter, was addressed by her
Christian name or by that of her husband.  That is to say, the unmarried
woman was simply "Joan;" the married one was "John's Wife."

Belasez was gifted by nature with a large amount of that kind of
intuition which has been defined as feeling the pressure of other
people's atmosphere.  It may be a gift which augurs delicacy and
refinement, but it always brings discomfort to its possessor.  She knew
instinctively, and in a moment, that Levina was likely to be her enemy.

It was true.  Levina was a prey to that green-eyed monster which sports
itself with the miseries of humanity.  She had been the best broideress
in the Castle until that day.  And now she felt herself suddenly
supplanted by a young thing of barely more than half her age and
experience, who was called in, forsooth, to do something which it was
imagined that Levina could not do.  What business had the Countess to
suppose there was any thing she could not do?--or, to want something out
of her power to provide?  Was there the slightest likelihood, thought
Levina, flaring up, that this scrap of a creature could work better than
herself?--a mere chit of a child (Levina was past thirty), with a
complexion like the fire-bricks (Levina's resembled putty), and hair the
colour of nasty sloes (Levina's was nearer that of a tiger-lily), and
great staring eyes like horn lanterns!  The Countess was the most
unreasonable, and Levina the most cruelly-outraged, of all the women
that had ever held a needle since those useful instruments were
originally invented.

Levina did not put her unparalleled wrongs into words.  It would have
been easier for Belasez to get on with her if she had done so.  She held
her head up, and snorted like an impatient horse, as she stalked through
the door into the ante-chamber.

"This is where thou art to be," she snapped in a staccato tone.

Any amount of personal slight and scorn was merely what Belasez had been
accustomed to receive from Christians ever since she had left her
cradle.  The disdain of Levina, therefore, though she could hardly enjoy
it, made far less impression on her than the unaccountable kindliness of
the royal ladies.

"The Lady bade me ask what thou wouldst eat?" demanded Levina in the
same tone as before.

"I thank thee.  Any thing that has not had life."

"What's that for?" came in shorter snaps than ever.

"It would not be _kosher_."

"Speak sense!  What does the vermin mean?"

"I mean, it would not be killed according to our law."

"Suppose it wasn't I--what then?"

"Then I must not eat it."

"Stupid, silly, ridiculous stuff!  May I be put in a pie, if I know what
the Lady was thinking about, when she brought in such road-dirt as this!
And my damsel sets herself above us all, forsooth!  She must have her
meat served according to some law that nobody ever heard of, least of
all the Lord King's noble Council: and she must have a table set for her
all by herself, as though she were a sick queen.  Pray you, my noble
Countess, would you eat in gold or silver?--and how many varlets shall
serve to carry your dainty meat?--and is your sweet Grace served upon
the knee, or no?  I would fain have things done as may pleasure my right
noble Lady."

Belasez answered as she usually disposed of similar affronts,--by
treating them as if they were offered in genuine courtesy, but with a
faint ring of satire beneath her tone.

"I thank you.  I should prefer wood, or pewter if it please you: and I
should think one varlet might answer.  I was never served upon the knee
yet, and it will scarcely be necessary now."

Levina gave a second and stronger snort, and disappeared down the
stairs.  In a few minutes she made her reappearance, carrying in one
hand a plate of broiled ham, and in the other a piece of extremely dry
and rather mouldy bread.

"Here is my gracious damsel's first course!  Fulk le Especer was so good
as to tell me that folks of her sort are mighty fond of ham; so I took
great care to bring her some.  There'll be sauce with the next."

That there would be sauce--of one species--with every course served to
her in that house, Belasez was beginning to feel no doubt.  Yet however
Levina chose to behave to her, the young Jewess maintained her own
dignity.  She quietly put aside the plate of ham, and, cutting off the
mouldy pieces, ate the dry bread without complaint Belasez's kindly and
generous nature was determined that the Countess, who had been so much
kinder to her than at that time Christians usually were to Jews, should
hear no murmuring word from her unless it came to actual starvation.

Levina's sauce presented itself unmistakably with the second course,
which proved to be a piece of apple-pie, swimming in the strongest
vinegar.  Though it must have set her teeth on edge, Belasez consumed
the pie in silence, avoiding the vinegar so far as she could, and
entertained while she did so by Levina's assurances that it delighted
her to see how completely Belasez enjoyed it.

The third article, according to Levina, was cheese: but the first
mouthful was enough to convince the persecuted Jewess that soft soap
would have been a more correct epithet.  She quietly let it alone.

"_Ha, chetife_!  I am sadly in fear that my sweetest damsel does not
like our Suffolk cheese?" said Levina in a most doleful tone.

"Is it manufactured in this county?" asked Belasez very coolly; for, in
1234, all soaps were of foreign importation.  "I thought it tasted more
like the French make."

Levina vanished down the stairs, but her suppressed laughter was quite
audible.  She came up again with two more plates, and informed Belasez
that they constituted the last course.  One of them was filled with
chicken-bones, picked exceedingly clean: the other with a piece of sweet
cake, over which had been poured some very hot saline compound which by
no means harmonised with the cake, but set Belasez's throat on fire.
She managed, however, to eat it, thinking that she would get little food
of any kind if she did not: and Levina departed with the plates,
remarking that it had done her good to see the excellent meal which
Belasez had made.  It was a relief to the girl to be left alone: for
solitude had no terrors for her, and Levina was certainly not an
enjoyable companion.  After half-an-hour's quiet, Margaret and Eva
entered the ante-chamber.

"Hast thou dined, Belasez?" asked Margaret, kindly.

"I thank my damsel, yes."

"Did Levina bring thee such dishes as thou mightest eat?"

"According to our law?  Oh yes."

It was rather a relief to Belasez that the question took that form.

"Then that is all right," said Margaret, innocently, and passed on into
her own room.

The Countess's step was heard approaching, but just before entering she
stopped at the head of the stairs.

"Thou hast given the girl her dinner, Levina?"

"Oh yes, my Lady!"

"What had she?"

"I brought her apple-pie, if it please my Lady, and cheese, and gateau
de Dijon, and ham, and--a few other little things: but she would not
touch the ham, and scarcely the cheese."

"Thou hast forgotten, Levina: I told thee no meat of any kind, nor fish;
and I believe no Jew will touch ham.  I did not know they objected to
cheese.  But had she enough?  Apple-pie and gateau de Dijon make but a
poor dinner."

And without questioning Levina further, the Countess went on and
addressed Belasez direct.

"My maid, hast thou fared well?  I fear Levina did not bring thee proper
things."

Belasez hesitated.  She was very unwilling to say no: and how could she
in conscience say yes?

"They were according to our law, I thank my Lady,--all but the ham.
That, under her gracious leave, I must decline."

"But thou didst not take the cheese?"

"No,--with my Lady's leave."

"Was it not in accordance with thy law, or didst thou not like it?"

"If my Lady will pardon me," said poor Belasez, driven into a corner, "I
did not like it."

"What kind was it?"

"Levina said it was Suffolk cheese."  Belasez's conscience rather smote
her in giving this answer.

"Ah!" responded the unconscious Countess, "it is often hard, and
everybody does not like it, I know."

Belasez was silent beyond a slight reverence to show that she heard the
observation.

"But hast thou had enough?" pursued the Countess, still unsatisfied.

"I am greatly obliged to my Lady, and quite ready to serve her," was the
evasive reply.

The Countess looked hard at Belasez, but she said no more.  She
despatched Levina for the scarf which was to be copied, and gave the
young Jewess her instructions.  The exquisite work which grew in
Belasez's skilful hands evidently delighted the Countess.  She was
extremely kind, and the reserved but sensitive nature of Belasez went
out towards her in fervent love.

To Margaret, the Jewish broideress was an object of equal mystery and
interest.  She would sit watching her work for long periods.  She
noticed that Belasez ignored the existence of her private oratory, made
no reverence to the gilded Virgin which stood on a bracket in her
wardrobe, and passed the _benitier_ without vouchsafing the least
attention to the holy water.  Manifestly, Jews did not believe in gilded
images and holy water.  But then, in what did they believe?  Had they
any faith in any thing?  Belasez had owned to saying her prayers, and
she acknowledged the existence of some law which she felt herself bound
to obey.  But whose law was it?--and to whom did she pray?  These
thoughts seethed in Margaret's brain till at last, one afternoon when
she sat watching the embroidery, they burst forth into speech,
"Belasez!"

"What would my damsel?"

"Belasez, what dost thou believe?"

The Jewess looked up in surprise.

"I am not sure that I understand my damsel's question.  Will she
condescend to explain?"

"I mean, what god dost thou worship?"

"There is but one God," answered Belasez, solemnly.

"That I believe, too: but we do not worship the same God, do we?"

"I think we do--to a certain extent."

"But there is a difference between us.  What is the difference?"

Belasez seemed to hesitate.

"Don't be afraid, but speak out!" said Margaret, eagerly.

"If I say what my Lady would not approve, would it be right in me?"

"My Lady and mother will not mind.  Go on!"

"Damsel, I think the difference touches Him who is the Sent of God, and
the Son of the Blessed.  We believe in Him, as well as you.  But we
believe that He is yet to come, and is to be the salvation of Israel.
You believe,"--Belasez's words came slowly, as if dragged from
her--"that He is come, long ago; and you think He will save all men."

"But that is our Lord Christ, surely?" said Margaret.

"You call Him so," was Belasez's reply.  "But He did come!" said
Margaret, in a puzzled tone.

"A man came, undoubtedly, who claimed to be the Man who was to come.
But was the claim a true one?"

"I have always been told that it was!"

"And I have always been told that it was not."

"Then how are we to find out which is true?"  Belasez spread her hands
out with a semi-Eastern gesture, which indicated hopeless incapacity, of
some sort.

"Damsel, do not ask me.  The holy prophets told our fathers of old time
that so long as Israel walked contrary to the Holy One, so long should
they wander over the earth, forsaken exiles, and be punished seven times
for their sins.  Are we not exiles?  Is He not punishing us?  Our holy
and beautiful house is a desolation; our land is overthrown by
strangers.  Yet we are no idolaters; we are no Sabbath-breakers; we do
not profane the name of the Blessed.  Do you think I never ask myself
for what sin it is that we are thus cast away from the presence of our
King?  In old days it was always for such sins as I have named: it
cannot be that now.  Is it--O Abraham our father! can it be?--that He
has come, the King of Israel, and we have not known Him?  Damsel, there
are thousands of the sons of Israel that have asked that question!  And
then--"

Belasez stopped suddenly.

"Go on!" urged Margaret.  "What then?"

"I shall say what my damsel will not wish to hear, if I do go on."

"But I wish very much to hear it."

"And then we look around on you, who call yourselves servants of Him
whom ye say is come.  We ask you to tell us what you have learned of
Him.  And ye answer us with the very things which the King of Israel
solemnly forbade.  Ye point us to images of dead men, and ye hold up
before us a goddess, a fair dead woman, and ye say, These are they whom
ye shall serve!  And we answer, If these things be what ye have learned
from him that is come, then he never can be the Sent of God.  God
forbade all idolatry, and all image-making: if he taught it, can he be
Messiah?  This is why in all the ages we have stood aloof.  We might
have received him, we might have believed him,--but for this."

"But I do not know," said Margaret, thoughtfully, "that holy Church lays
much stress on images.  I should think, if ye prefer to pray without
them, she would allow you to do so.  I cannot understand how ye can pray
without them; for what is there to pray to?  It is your infirmity, I
suppose."

"Ah, Damsel," said Belasez with a sad smile, "this seems to you a very,
very little matter!  How shall a Jew and a Christian ever understand
each other?  For it is life or death to us.  It is a question of
obeying, or of disobeying--not of doing something we fancy, or do not
fancy."

"Yes, but holy Church would decide it for you," urged Margaret,
earnestly.

"Damsel, your words are strange to my ears.  The Holy One (to whom be
praise!) has decided it long ago.  `Ye shall _not_ make unto you any
graven image: ye shall _not_ bow down to them, nor worship them.'  The
command is given.  What difference can it make to us, that the thing you
call the Church dares to disregard it?  I scarcely understand what `the
Church' is.  If I rightly know what my damsel means, it signifies all
the Christians.  And Christians are Gentiles.  How can the sons of
Israel take laws from them?  And to speak as if they could abrogate the
law of Him that sitteth in the heavens, before whom they are all less
than nothing and vanity!  It is a strange tongue in which my damsel
speaks.  I do not understand it."

Neither did Margaret understand Belasez.  She sat and looked at her,
with her mind in bewildered confusion.  To her, the authority of the
Church was paramount,--was the only irrefragable thing.  And here was
something which looked like another Church, setting itself up with some
unaccountable and unheard-of claim to be older, truer, better!--
something which denied that the Church--with horror be it whispered!--
had any right to make laws!--which referred to a law, and a Legislator,
so high above the Church that it scarcely regarded the Church as worth
mention in the matter at all!  Margaret felt stunned.

"But God speaks through the Church!" she gasped.

"If that were so, they would speak the same thing," was Belasez's
unanswerable response.

Margaret felt pushed into a corner, and did not know what to say next.
The difference between her point of view and that of Belasez was so
vast, that considerations which would have silenced any one else at once
passed as the idle wind by her.  And Margaret could not see how to alter
it.

"I must ask Father Nicholas to show thee how it is," she said at last in
a kindly manner.  "I am only an ignorant girl.  But he can explain to
thee."

"Can he?" said Belasez.  "What explanations of his, or any one's, can
prove that man may please himself about obeying his Maker?  He will tell
me--does my damsel think I have never listened to a Christian priest?--
he will tell me to offer incense to yonder gilded image.  Had I not
better offer it to myself?  I am a living daughter of Israel: is that
not better than the stone image of a dead one?"

"Better than our blessed Lady!" cried the horrified Margaret.

"Perhaps, if she were here, a living woman, she might be the better
woman of the two," said Belasez, coolly.  "But a living woman, I am
sure, is better than a stone image, which can neither see, nor hear, nor
feel."

"Oh, but don't you know," said Margaret eagerly, as a bright idea
occurred to her, "that we have the holy Father,--the Pope?  He keeps the
Church right; and our Lord commissioned Saint Peter, who was the first
Pope, to teach every body and promised to guard him from all error."

Margaret was mentally congratulating herself on this brilliant solution
of all difficulties.  Belasez looked up thoughtfully.  "But did He
promise to guard all the successors?"

"Oh, of course!"

"I wonder--supposing He were the Messiah--if He did," said Belasez.
"Because I have sometimes thought that might explain it."

"What might explain it?"

"My damsel knows that the disciples of great teachers often corrupt
their master's teaching, and in course of time they may come to teach
doctrines quite different from his.  It has struck me sometimes whether
it might be so with you: that your Master was truly the Sent of God, and
that you have so corrupted His doctrines that there is very little
likeness left now.  There must be very little, if He spoke according to
the will of the Holy One."

"But the Church never changes," said Margaret.  "Then He could not be
true," said Belasez.  "Oh, but Father Nicholas says the Church develops!
She always teaches the truth, but she unfolds it more and more as time
goes on."

"The truth is one, my damsel.  It maybe more.  But it can never be
different and contrary."

"But we change," urged Margaret, taking the last weapon out of her
quiver.  "We may need one thing to-day, and another to-morrow."

"We may.  And if the original command had been even, `Ye shall make no
image _but one_,' I should think it might then, as need were, have been
altered to, `Ye may now make a thousand images.'  But being, `Ye shall
make _none_' it cannot be altered.  That would be to alter His character
who is in all His universe the only unchangeable One."

Margaret sat and watched the progress of the embroidery, but she said no
more.



CHAPTER FOUR.

THE TIME OF JACOB'S TROUBLE.

  "I know that the thorny path I tread
  Is ruled with a golden line;
  And I know that the darker life's tangled thread,
  The brighter the rich design.

  "For I see, though veiled from my mortal sight,
  God's plan is all complete;
  Though the darkness at present be not light,
  And the bitter be not sweet."

The course of public events at that time was of decidedly a stirring
character.  The public considered that four mock suns which had been
seen during the previous winter, two snakes fighting in the sea off the
south coast, and fifteen days' continuous thunder in the following
March, were portents sufficiently formidable to account for any
succeeding political events whatever.  The Church was busy introducing
the Order of Saint Francis into England.  The populace were discovering
how to manufacture cider, hitherto imported: and were, quite unknown to
themselves, laying the foundation of their country's commercial
greatness by breaking into the first vein of coal at Newcastle.  In
fact, the importance of this last discovery was so little perceived,
that a hundred and fifty years were suffered to elapse before any
advantage was taken of it.

Belasez's work was done, and entirely to the satisfaction of the
Countess.  So much, also, did the Princess Marjory admire it, that she
requested another scarf might be worked for her, to be finished in time
for her approaching marriage.  She was now affianced to Gilbert de
Clare, the new Earl of Pembroke.  It was not without a bitter pang that
Marjory had resigned her proud hope of wearing the crown of England, and
had consented to become merely the wife of an English noble.  But the
crown was gone from her beyond recall.  The fickle-hearted King, who had
been merely attracted for a season by her great beauty, was now as
eagerly pursuing a foreign Countess, Jeanne of Ponthieu, whom report
affirmed to be equally beautiful: and perhaps Marjory was a little
consoled, though she might not even admit it to herself, by the fact
that Earl Gilbert was at once a much richer man than the King, and very
much better-looking.  She made him a good wife when the time came, and
she grieved bitterly over his loss, when six years afterwards he was
killed in a tournament at Hereford.

Marjory was not so particular as her sister about the work being done
under her own eyes.  She left pattern and colours to Belasez's taste,
only expressing her wish that red and gold should predominate, as they
were the tints alike of the arms of Scotland and of Clare.  The Princess
was to be married on the first of August, and Belasez promised that her
father should deliver the scarf during his customary hawker's round in
July.

The young Jewess had suffered less than might have been supposed from
Levina.  The Countess, without condescending to assign any reason, had
quietly issued orders that Belasez's meals should be served in the
ante-chamber, half an hour before the general repast was ready in the
hall.  In the presence of the young ladies, and not unfrequently of the
Countess herself, Levina deemed it prudent to bring up apple-pie without
sauce piquante, and to serve gateaux unmixed with pepper or anchovies.

Abraham became eloquent in his thanks for the kindness shown to his
daughter, and the tears were in Belasez's eyes when she took leave.

"Farewell, my maid," said the Countess, addressing the latter.  "Thou
art a fair girl, and thou hast been a good girl.  I shall miss thy
pretty face in Magot's ante-chamber.  We shall meet again, I doubt not.
Such work as thine is not to be lightly esteemed.--Wilt thou grudge thy
treasure to me, if I ask for her again?" she added, turning to Abraham
with a smile.

"Surely not, my Lady!  My Lady has been as an angel of God to my
darling."

"And remember, both of you, that if ye come into any trouble--as may
be--and thou seekest safe shelter for thy bird, I will give it her at
any time, in return for her lovely work."

This was a greater boon than it may appear.  Troubles were only too
likely to assail a Jewish household, and to know a place where Belasez
could seek shelter and be certain of finding it, was a comfort indeed,
and might at any hour be a most terrible necessity.

Abraham kissed the robe of the Countess, and poured out eloquent
blessings on her.  Belasez kissed her hand and that of Margaret: but the
tears choked the girl's voice as she turned to follow her father.

The arguments against idolatry which Margaret had heard from Belasez
were ghosts easily laid by Father Nicholas.  A few vague platitudes
concerning the supreme authority committed to the Apostle Peter, and
through him to the Papacy (Father Nicholas discreetly left both points
unencumbered by evidence),--the wickedness of listening to sceptical
reasonings, and the happiness of implicit obedience to holy Church,--
were quite enough to reduce Belasez's arguments, as they remained in
Margaret's mind, to the condition of uncomfortable reminiscences, which,
being also wicked, it was best to forget as soon as possible.

But there had been one listener to that conversation, of whom neither
party took account, and who could not forget it.  This was Doucebelle de
Vaux.  In her brain the words of the young Jewess took root and
germinated, but so silently, that no one suspected it but herself.
Father Nicholas had not the faintest idea of the importance of the
question, when one morning, during the Latin lesson which he
administered twice a week to the young ladies of the Castle, Doucebelle
asked him the precise meaning of _adoro_.

"It means, in its original, to speak to or accost any one," said the
priest; "but being now taken into the holy service of religion, it
signifies to pray, to supplicate; and, thence derived--to worship, to
bow one's self down."

"And,--if I do not trouble you too much, Father,--would you please to
tell me the difference between _adoro_ and _colo_?"

Father Nicholas was a born philologist, though in his day there was no
appellation for the science.  To be asked any question involving a
derivation or comparison of words, was to him as a trumpet to a
war-horse.

"My daughter, it is pleasure, not trouble, to me, to answer such
questions as these.  _Colo_ is a word which comes from the Greek, but is
now obsolete in that tongue, wherein it seems to have had the meaning of
feed or tend.  Transferred to the Latin, it signifies to cultivate,
exercise, practise, or cherish,--say rather, in any sense, to take pains
about a thing: hence, used in the blessed service of religion, it is to
regard, venerate, respect, or worship.  Therefore _cultus_, which is the
noun of this verb, signifies, when referred to things inanimate, tending
or cultivation to things animate, education, culture; to God and the
holy saints, reverence and worship.  Dost thou now understand, my
daughter?"

"I thank you very much, Father," said Doucebelle, quietly; "I understand
now."

When she was alone, she put her information together, and thought it
carefully over.

"_Non adorabis ea, neque coles_."

Images, then, were not to be reverenced, either in heart or by bodily
gesture.  So said the version of Scripture made by Saint Jerome, and
used and authorised by the Church.  But how was it that the Church
allowed these things to be done?  Did she not know that Scripture
forbade them?  Or was she above all Scripture?  Practically, it looked
like it.

Yet how was it, if the Church were the mouthpiece of God, that the
commands issued by the One were diametrically at variance with the
recommendations given by the other?  If God did not change,--if the
Church did not change,--when had they been in accord, and how came they
to differ?

Doucebelle had now reached a point where she could neither turn round
nor go further.  The more she cogitated on her problem, the more
insoluble it appeared to her.  Yet her instinctive feeling told her that
to refer it to Father Nicholas would be of no service.  He was one of
the better class of priests,--a man of respectable character, with
literary proclivities, which had in his case the effect of keeping him
from vice on the one hand, and of deadening his spiritual sensibilities
on the other.  To him, the religion he taught, and had himself been
taught, was sufficient for all necessities, and he could not understand
any one wanting more.  When a man's mind has never been disturbed by the
question, it is no cause for wonder that he has never sought for the
answer.

That Father Nicholas would have listened to her, Doucebelle knew; for he
was by no means an unkind or disobliging man.  But she had sense to
perceive that he was incapable of understanding her, and that his only
idea of dealing with such queries would be not to solve, but to suppress
them.

Doucebelle passed in mental review every person in the Castle: and every
one, in turn, she dismissed as unsuitable for her purpose.  The other
chaplain of the Earl, Father Warner, was a stern, harsh man, of whom
she, in common with all the young people, was very much afraid; she
could not think of putting such queries to him.  The chaplain of the
Countess, Father Elias, had just resigned his post, and his successor
had not yet been appointed.  Master Aristoteles, the household
physician, was an excellent authority on the virtues of comfrey or
frogs' brains, but a very poor resource on a theological question.  The
Earl was not at home.  The Countess would be likely to enter into
Doucebelle's perplexities little better than Father Nicholas, and would
playfully chide her for entertaining them.  All the young people were
too young except Sir John de Burgh and Hawise.  Sir John had not an idea
beyond war, politics, and falconry; and Hawise was accustomed to decline
mental investigations altogether.  So Doucebelle was shut up to her
thoughts and her Psalter.  Perhaps she might have been worse situated.

On the 7th of February 1235, died Hugh, Bishop of Lincoln, "the enemy of
all monks."  He had not, however, by any means been the enemy of all
superstition.  He was remarkably easy to take in by young women who had
sustained personal encounters with Satan, nuns who had been favoured
with apparitions of the Virgin, and monks to whom Saint Peter or Saint
Lawrence had made revelations.  It is little wonder that he was
canonised, and perhaps not much that a touch of his bones, or a shred of
his chasuble, were asserted to be possessed of miraculous power.  A very
different man filled the see of Lincoln in his stead.  On the 3rd of
June following, Robert Grosteste was appointed to the vacant episcopal
throne.

Grosteste was a man who had learned his life-lessons, not from priest or
monk, from Fathers or Decretals, but direct from God.  I do not presume
to say that he held no false doctrine, or that he made no mistakes: but
considering the time at which he lived, and the corruption all around
him, his teaching was singularly free from "wood, hay, stubble"--
singularly clear, evangelical, and true to the one Foundation.
Especially he set himself in opposition to the most popular doctrine of
the day--that which was termed grace of congruity.  And for a man in
such a position to set himself in entire and active opposition to
popular taste and belief, and to persevere in it, requires supplies
either of vast pride from Satan, or of great grace from God.  Grace of
congruity is simply a variety of the old heresy of human merit.  It clad
its proud self in the silver robe of humility, by professing to possess
only an _imperfect_ degree of qualification for the reception of God's
grace.  Grace of condignity, on the other hand, put itself on an
equality with the Divine gift, by its pretension to possess that
qualification to the uttermost.

The summer was chiefly occupied by pageants and feasts, for there were
two royal marriages, that of the Princess Marjory of Scotland with
Gilbert de Clare, and that of the Princess Isabel of England with the
Emperor Frederic the Second of Germany.  The latter ceremony did not
take place in England, but the gorgeous preparations did: for Henry the
Third, who delighted in spending money even more than in acquiring it,
provided his sister with the most splendid trousseau ever known even for
a royal bride.  Her very cooking-vessels were all of silver, and her
reins and bridles were worked in gold.  She was married at Worms, in
June: the wedding of the Princess Marjory took place on the first of
August.  Abraham and Belasez were faithful to their promises, and the
beautiful scarf, wrought in scarlet and gold, was delivered into
Marjory's hands in time to be worn at the wedding.  The young people of
the Castle were naturally interested in the stereotyped rough and silly
gambols which were then the invariable concomitants of a marriage: and
the stocking, skilfully flung by Marie, hit Margaret on the head, to the
intense delight of the merry group around her.  The equally amusing work
of cutting up the bride-cake revealed Richard de Clare in possession of
the ring, supposed to indicate approaching matrimony, Marie of the
silver penny which denoted riches, and Doucebelle of the thimble which
doomed her to celibacy.

"There, now!  'Tis as plain to be seen as the church spire!" said Eva,
clapping her hands.  "Margaret is destined by fate to wed with my cousin
Sir Richard."

"Well, if `fate' mean my wish and intention, so she is," whispered the
Countess to her sister the bride.

"Doth thy Lord so purpose it?" asked Marjory.

"Oh, hush!" responded the Countess, laughing.  "He knows nothing about
it, and I don't intend that he shall, just yet.  Trust me to bring
things about."

"But suppose he should be angry?"

"_Pure foy_!  He is never angry with me.  Oh, thou dost not understand,
my dear Madge,--at present.  Men always want managing.  When thou hast
been wed a year, thou wilt know more about it."

"But can all women manage men?" asked Marjory in an amused tone.

"_Ha, chetife_!  No, indeed.  And there are some men who can't be
managed,--worse luck!  But my Lord is not one of the latter, the holy
saints be thanked."

"And thou art one of the women who can manage men," answered Marjory,
laughing.  "I wonder at thee, Magot, and have done so many times,--thou
hast such a strange power of winning folks to thy will."

"Well, that some have, and some have not.  I have it, I know," said the
Countess, complacently.  "But I will give thee a bit of counsel, Madge,
which thou mayest find useful.  First, have a will: let it be clear and
distinct in thine own mind, what thou wouldst have done.  And, secondly,
let people see that thou takest quietly for granted that of course they
will do it.  There is a great deal in that, with some people.  A weak
will always bends to a strong."

"But when two strong ones come in collision, how then?"

"Why, like wild animals,--fight it out, and discover which is the
stronger."

"A tournament of wills!" said Marjory.  "I should hardly care to enter
those lists, I think."

The Countess laughed, and shook her head.  She knew that among the
strong-willed women Marjory was not to be reckoned.

A tournament of that class was being held all that summer between the
regular priests and the newly-instituted Predicant Friars.  The priests
complained that the friars presumed to hear confessions in the churches,
which it was the prerogative of the regularly appointed priests to do:
and wrathfully alleged that the public were more ready to confess to
these travelling mendicants than to the proper authorities.  It is
possible that the cause may be traced to that human proclivity which
inclines a man to confide rather in a stranger whom he may never meet
again, than in one who can remind him of uncomfortable facts at
inconvenient times: but also it is possible that the people recognised
in the teaching of the Minorite Friars, largely recruited as they were
from the ranks of the Waldenses, somewhat more of that good news which
Christ came to bring to men, than of the endless, unmeaning ceremonies
which encumbered the doctrine of the regular priests.

The summer had given place to autumn.  The courtyard of Bury Castle was
strewn with golden and russet leaves; the Countess was preparing a new
dress for the feast of Saint Luke.  A foggy day had ended in a dark
night, and Eva threw down her work and rethreaded her needle with a
long-drawn sigh.  "Tired of sewing, Eva?"

"Very tired, Lady.  I almost wish buttons grew on robes, and required no
sewing."

"Lazy maiden!" said the Countess playfully.  "Then I am lazy too,"
interposed Margaret; "for I do hate sewing."

"If it please the Lady," said Levina's voice at the door, "an old man
and woman entreat the honour of laying a petition before her."

"An old man and woman?--such a night as this!  Do they come from the
town?"

"If it please the Lady, I do not know."

"Very well.  If the warder thinks them not suspicious persons, they can
come into the hall.  I shall be down shortly."

When the Countess descended, followed by Margaret and Doucebelle, she
found her petitioners awaiting her.  Most unsuspicious, harmless, feeble
creatures they looked.  The old man had tottered in as if barely able to
stand; the old woman walked with a stout oaken staff, and was bent
nearly double.

"Well, good people!--what would ye have?" asked the Countess.

In answer, the old man lifted his head, pulled away a mass of false grey
hair and a wax mask from, his face, and the old Jew pedlar, Abraham of
Norwich, stood before the astonished ladies.

"I am come," he said in a voice broken by emotion, "to claim my Lady's
promise."

"What promise, old man?"

"My Lady was pleased to say, that if the robbers broke into the nest, or
the hawk hovered over it, the young bird should be safe in her care."

"Thy daughter?  I remember, I did say so.  Where is she?"

At a signal from Abraham, the aged woman at his side suddenly
straightened herself, and the removal of another wax mask and some false
white hair revealed the beautiful face of Belasez.

"Welcome, my maiden," said the Countess kindly.  "And what troubles have
assailed thee, old Abraham, which made this disguise and flight
necessary?"

"My Lady is good to her poor servants,--may the Blessed One bind her in
the bundle of life!  But not all Christians are like her.  Lady, there
is this day sore trouble, and great rebuke and blasphemy, against the
sons of Israel that dwell in Norwich.  They accuse us of having
kidnapped and crucified a Christian child.  They lay too much to us,
Lady,--too much!  We have never done such a thing, nor thought of it.
But the house of my Lady's servant is despoiled, and his son
ill-treated, and his brother in the gaol at Norwich for this cause: and
to save his beautiful Belasez he has brought her to his gracious Lady.
Will she give his bird shelter in her nest, according to her word?"

"Indeed I will," answered the Countess.  "Margaret, take the maid up to
thine ante-chamber, and bid Levina bring her food.  She must stay here a
while.  And thou, sit thou down, old Abraham, and rest and refresh
thee."

"Truly, my Lady is as one of the angels of the Holy One to her tried
servants!" said Abraham thankfully.

Belasez kissed the hand of the Countess, and then turned and followed
Margaret to the ante-chamber.

"Art thou very tired, Belasez?"

"Very, very weary, my Damsel.  We have come fourteen miles on foot since
yesterday."

Very weary Belasez looked.  Now that the momentary excitement of her
arrival and reception was over, the light had died out of the languid
eyes, and her head drooped as if she could scarcely hold it up.

"Go to bed," said Margaret; "that is the best place for over-tired
people.--Levina!  My Lady and mother wills thee to bring the maid some
food."

Levina appeared at the door, with an expression of undisguised
annoyance.

"_Ha, chetife_!--if here is not my Lady Countess Jew come again!  What
would it please her sweetest Grace to take?"

But Levina had forgotten, as older people sometimes do, that Margaret
was no longer a child to be kept in silent subjection.  Girls of
fifteen--and she was nearly that now--were virtually women in the
thirteenth century.  Margaret turned to the scoffing Levina, with an air
of dignified displeasure which rather startled the latter.

"Levina! thou hast forgotten thyself.  Do as thou art bid."

And Levina disappeared without venturing a reply.

"What have they done to thy brother, Belasez?" asked Margaret.

"They beat him sorely.  Damsel, and turned him forth into the street."

"Where did he go?"

"That is known to the Blessed One.  Out in the fields somewhere.  It is
not the first time that a Jew hath lain hidden for a night or more,
until the fury of the Christians should pass away."

Doucebelle de Vaux was a grave and thoughtful girl, beyond her years.
She sat silent now, trying to recall, from the stores of a memory not
too well furnished, whether Christ, whom these Christians professed to
follow, had ever treated people in such a manner as this.  At length she
remembered that she had seen a picture at Thetford of His driving sundry
people out of the Temple with a scourge.  But was that because they were
Jews?  Doucebelle thought not.  She was too ignorant to be sure, but she
fancied they had been doing something wrong.

"I should think," said Margaret warmly, "that you Jews must hate us
Christians."

"Christians are not all alike," said Belasez with a faint smile.

"But do you not hate us?" persisted Margaret.

"Delecresse does, I am afraid," replied Belasez, colouring.

"But thyself?"

"No.  O my Damsel, no!"  She warmed into vivid life for an instant, to
make this reply; then she sank back against the wall, apparently
overpowered by utter weariness.

"I am glad of that," said Margaret, with her usual outspoken
earnestness.--"What can Levina be doing?  Doucebelle, do go and see.--
And hast thou been hard at work at Norwich all the summer, Belasez?"

"No, if it please my Damsel.  I have dwelt all this summer at Lincoln,
with my mother's father."

"`The Devil overlooks Lincoln,' they say," remarked Margaret,
laughingly.  "I hope he did thee no mischief, Belasez.  But, perhaps
Jews do not believe in the Devil?"

"Ah!  We have good cause to believe in the Devil," answered Belasez
gravely.  "Nay, Damsel, he did me no mischief.  Yet--what know I?  The
Holy One knoweth all things."

Belasez's tone struck Margaret as hinting at some one thing in
particular.  But she did not explain further.  Perhaps she was too
tired.

Doucebelle returned at this point, followed by Levina, who carried a
plate of manchet-bread and a bowl of milk.  And though Belasez did not
know it, she owed thanks to Doucebelle that it was not skim milk.  The
young Jewess ate as if she were very faint as well as weary.

"Then hast thou come here all the way from Lincoln?" inquired Margaret
when the bowl was emptied.

"If it please my Damsel, no.  I had returned home only two days before
the riot."

"Is thy mother living?" asked Margaret abruptly.

"Yes.  She abode at Lincoln with my grandfather.  He is very old, and
will not in likelihood live long.  When he dies, my mother will come
back to us."

"Do go to bed, Belasez.  Thou canst scarcely hold thine head up, nor
thine eyes open," said Margaret compassionately: and Belasez accepted
the invitation with thanks.  Doucebelle went with her, and silently
noticed two facts: that Belasez stood for a few minutes in silent
prayer, with her face turned to the wall, before she offered to undress;
and that she was fast asleep almost as soon as her head had touched the
pillow.

Doucebelle stood still and looked at the sleeping girl.  Why was it so
wicked to be a Jew?  Had Belasez been a Christian of noble birth, or
even of mean extraction, she would have been regarded as an ornament of
any Court in Christendom.  Some nobleman or knight would very soon have
found that lovely face, and her refined and dignified manners were fit
for any lady in the land.  Why must she be regarded as despicable, and
treated with abuse and loathing, merely because she had been born a
Jewess?  Of course Doucebelle knew the traditionary reason--because the
Jews had crucified Christ.  But Belasez had not been one of them.  Why
must she bear the shame of others' sins?  Did none of my ancestors,
thought Doucebelle, ever do some wicked deed?  Yet people do not despise
me on that account.  Why do they scorn her?

Belasez stirred in her sleep, and one or two broken words dropped from
her unconscious lips.  Greatly interested, and a little startled,
Doucebelle bent over her.  But she could make out nothing connected from
the indistinct utterances.  It sounded as if Belasez were dreaming about
somebody whose face she could not see.  "Hid faces," Doucebelle heard
her murmur.  It was probably, she thought, some reminiscence connected
with the tumults which had brought her to seek shelter at the Castle.
Doucebelle drew the coverlet higher over the weary sleeper, and went to
seek rest in her own bed.



CHAPTER FIVE.

NOT WISELY.

  "I love but one, and only one,--
  O Damon, thou art he;
  Love thou but one, and only one,
  And let that one be me."

  [Note 1.]

The pedlar, Abraham, declined to remain at the Castle.  There were
plenty of places, he said, where an old man could be safe: it was quite
another thing for a young girl.  If his gracious Lady would of her
bounty give his bird shelter until the riot and its consequences were
over, and every thing peaceable again, Abraham would come and fetch her
as soon as he deemed it thoroughly prudent.  Meanwhile, Belasez could
work for the Lady.  The Countess was only too pleased to procure such
incomparable embroidery on such easy terms.  She set Belasez to work on
the border of an armilaus, intended as a present for the new Queen: for
the hitherto unmarriageable King had at last found a Princess to accept
him.  She was the second daughter of a penniless Provencal Count; but
she was a great beauty, though an extremely young girl; and her eldest
sister was Queen of France.  She proved a costly bargain.  Free from all
visible vices except two, which, unfortunately, were two cultivated by
Henry himself--unscrupulous acquisition and reckless extravagance--she
nevertheless contrived to do terrible mischief, by giving her husband no
advice in general, and bad advice whenever she gave it in particular.
His ivy-like nature wanted a strong buttress upon which to lean; and
Eleonore of Provence was neither stronger nor more stable than himself.
Her one idea of life was to enjoy herself to the utmost.  When she
wanted a new dress, she had not the slightest notion of waiting till she
had money to pay for it.  What were the people of England in her eyes,
but machines for making it--things to be taxed--a vast and inexhaustible
treasury, of which you did but turn the handle, and coins came showering
out?

So the tax-gatherers went grinding on, and the land cried to God, and
the Court heard no sound.  The man who was to be God's avenger upon them
was an obscure foreigner as yet.  And the English noble who above all
others was to aid him in that vengeance, was still only a fair-haired
youth of fifteen, whose thoughts were busy with a very different
subject.  But out of the one, the other was to grow, watered by tears
and blood.

He was standing--young Richard de Clare--in one of the recessed windows
of the great hall, with Margaret beside him.  They were talking in very
low tones.  Richard's manner was pleading and earnest, while Margaret's
eyes were cast down, and she was diligently winding round her finger a
shred of green sewing-silk, as though her most important concern were to
make it go round a certain number of times.

It was the old story, so many times repeated in this world, sometimes to
flow smoothly on like waters to their haven, sometimes to end in stormy
wreckage and bitter disappointment.

They were very young lovers.  We should term them mere boy and girl, and
count them unfit to consider the matter at all.  But in the thirteenth
century, when circumstances forced men and women early to the front, and
sixty years was considered ripe old age, fifteen was equivalent at least
to twenty now.

In this instance, the course of true love--for it was on both sides very
true--seemed likely to be smooth enough.  The King had granted the
marriage of Richard to Earl Hubert; and, as was then well understood,
the person to whom he would most probably marry his ward was his own
daughter.  The only irregular item of the matter was that the pair
should fall in love, or should broach the subject at all to each other.
But human hearts are unaccountable articles; and even in those days,
when matrimony was an affair of rule and compasses, those irregular
things did occasionally conduct themselves in a very irregular manner,
leading young people to fall in love (and sometimes to run away) with
the wrong person, but happily and occasionally, as in this instance,
with the right one.

Half an hour later, Margaret was kneeling on a velvet cushion at the
feet of the Countess, who was (with secret delight) receiving auricular
confession concerning the very point on which she had set her heart.

This mother and daughter were great friends,--a state of things too
infrequent at any time, and particularly so in the Middle Ages.
Margaret, the only one of her mother, was an unusually cherished and
petted child.  The result was that she had no fear of the Countess, and
looked upon her as her natural confidante.  Perhaps, if more daughters
would do so, there might be fewer unhappy marriages.  At the same time
it must be admitted, that some mothers by no means invite confidence.

The Countess of Kent, sweet as she was, had one great failing,--a fault
often to be found in very gentle and amiable natures.  She was not
sufficiently straightforward.  Instead of honestly telling people what
she wanted them to do, she liked to manage them into it; and this
managing involved at most times more or less dissimulation.  She dearly
loved to conduct her affairs by a series of little secrets.  This is a
temperament which usually rests on a mixture of affection and want of
courage.  We cannot bear to grieve those whom we love, and we shrink
from calling down their anger on ourselves, or even from risking their
disapprobation of our conduct, past or proposed.  Now, it had been for
some years the dearest wish of the Countess's heart that her Margaret
should marry Richard de Clare.  But she never whispered her desire to
any one,--least of all to her husband, with whom, humanly speaking, it
lay mainly to promote or defeat it.  And now, when Margaret's blushing
confession was whispered to her, the Countess privately congratulated
herself on her excellent management, and thought how much better it was
to pull unseen strings than to blaze one's wishes abroad.

"And, Lady, will you of your grace plead for us with my Lord and
father?" said Margaret in a coaxing tone at last.

"Oh, leave it all to me," replied her mother.  "I will manage him into
it.  Never tell a man anything, my dove, if thou wouldst have him do it.
Men are such obstinate, perverse creatures, that as often as not they
will just go the other way out of sheer wilfulness.  Thou must always
contrive to manage them into it."

Margaret, who had inherited her father's honesty with her mother's
amiability, was rather puzzled by this counsel.

"But how do you manage them?" said she.

"There is an art in that, my dear.  It takes brains.  Different men
require very different kinds of management.  Now thy father is one who
will generally consent to a thing when it is done, though he would not
if it were suggested to him at first.  He rather likes his own way;
still, he is very good when he is well managed,"--for instance after
instance came floating back to the wife's mind, in which he had against
his own judgment given way to her.  "So that is the way to manage him.
Now our Lord King Henry requires entirely different handling."

That was true enough.  While Earl Hubert always had a will of his own,
and knew what it was (though he did not always get it), King Henry had
no will, and never knew what it was until somebody else told him.

"I am afraid, Lady, I don't understand the management of men," said
Margaret, with a little laugh and blush.

"Thou wilt learn in time, my dear.  Thou art rather too fond of saying
all thou meanest.  That is not wise--for a woman.  Of course a man ought
to tell his wife every thing.  But there is no need for a wife always to
be chattering to her husband: she must have her little secrets, and he
ought to respect them.  Now, as to Sir Richard, I can see as well as
possible the kind of management he will require; thou must quietly
suggest ideas to him, gently and diffidently, as if thou wert desirous
of his opinion: but whenever he takes them up, mind and always let him
think he is getting his own way.  He has a strong will, against which a
foolish woman would just run full tilt, and spoil every thing.  A wise
one will quietly get her own way, and let him fancy he has got his.
That is thy work, Magot."

Margaret shook her bright head with a laugh.  Such work as that was not
at all in her line.

It took only a day for the girls to discover that the Belasez who had
come back to them in October was not the Belasez who had gone away from
them at Whitsuntide.  She seemed almost a different being.  Quite as
amiable, as patient, as refined, as before, there was something about
her which they instantly perceived, but to which they found it hard to
give a name.  It was not exactly any one thing.  It was not sadness, for
at times she seemed more bright and lively than they remembered her of
old: it was not ill-temper, for her patience was proof against any
amount of teasing.  But her moods were far more variable than they used
to be.  A short time after she had been playing with little Marie, all
smiles and sunshine, they would see tears rush to her eyes, which she
seemed anxious to conceal.  And at times there was an expression of
distress and perplexity in her face, evidently not caused by any
intricacy in the pattern she was working.

Indirect questions produced none but evasive answers.  Each of the girls
had her own idea as to the solution of the enigma.  Margaret, very
naturally, pronounced Belasez in love.  Eva, one of whose sisters had
been recently ill, thought she was anxious about her brother.  Marie
suggested that too much damson tart might be a satisfactory
explanation,--that having been the state of things with herself a few
days before.  Hawise, who governed her life by a pair of moral
compasses, was of opinion that Belasez thought it proper to look
sorrowful in her circumstances, and therefore did so except in an
emergency.  Doucebelle alone was silent: but her private thought was
that no one of the four had come near the truth.

When Belasez had been about a week at the Castle, one afternoon she and
Doucebelle were working alone in the wardrobe.  The Countess and
Margaret were away for the day, on a visit to the Abbess of Thetford;
Eva and Marie were out on the leads; Hawise was busy in her own
apartments.  Belasez had been unusually silent that morning.  She worked
on in a hurried, nervous way, never speaking nor looking up, and a
lovely arabesque pattern grew into beauty under her deft fingers.
Suddenly Doucebelle said--

"Belasez, does life never puzzle thee?"

Belasez looked up, with almost a frightened expression in her eyes.

"Can anything puzzle one more?" she said: "unless it were the perplexity
which is hovering over my soul."

"Is that anything in which I could help thee?"

"It is something in which no human being could help me--only He before
whom the inhabitants of the earth are as grasshoppers."

There was silence for a moment.  Then, in a low, hushed tone, Belasez
said--

"Doucebelle, didst thou ever do a thing which must be either very right,
or very wrong, and thou hadst no means whereby to know which it was?"

"No," answered Doucebelle slowly.  "I can scarcely imagine such a
thing."

"Scarcely imagine the thing, or the uncertainty?"

"The uncertainty.  Because I should ask the priest."

"The priest!--where is he?"

Doucebelle looked up in surprise at the tone, and saw that Belasez was
in tears.

"We had priests," said the young Jewess.  "We had sons of Aaron, and a
temple, and an altar, and a holy oracle, whereby the Blessed One made
known His will in all matters of doubt and perplexity to His people.
But where are they now?  The mountains of Zion are desolate, and the
foxes walk upon them.  The light has died out of the sacred gems, even
if they themselves were to be found.  We have walked contrary to Him,--
ah! where is the unerring prophet that shall tell us how we did it?--and
He walks contrary to us, and is punishing us seven times for our sins.
We are in the desert, in the dark.  And the pillar of fire has gone back
into Heaven, and the Angel of the Covenant leadeth us no more."

Doucebelle was almost afraid to speak, lest she should say something
which might do more harm than good.  She only ventured after a pause to
remark--

"Still there are priests."

"Yours?  I know what they would tell me."  Belasez's fervent voice had
grown constrained all at once.

"Yes, thou dost not believe them, I suppose," said Doucebelle, with a
baffled feeling.

"I want a prophet, Doucebelle, not a priest.  Nay, He knows, the Holy
One, that we want a priest most bitterly; that we have no sacrifice
wherewith to stand before Him,--no blood to make atonement.  But we want
the prophet to point us to the priest.  Let us know, by revelation from
Heaven, that this man, or that man, is the accepted Priest of the Most
High, and trust us to bring our fairest lambs in sacrifice."

"Belasez, I believe that the Lamb was offered, twelve hundred years ago,
and the sacrifice which alone God will accept for the sins of men is
over for ever, and is of everlasting efficacy."

"I know."  Belasez's face was more troubled than before.

"If thou canst not trust His priests, couldst thou not trust Him?"

"Trust whom?" exclaimed Belasez, with her eyes on fire.  "O Doucebelle,
Doucebelle, I know not how to bear it!  I thought I was so strong to
stand up against all falsehood and error,--and here, one man, with one
word,--Let me hold my peace.  But O that Thou wouldst rend the heavens,
that Thou wouldst come down!  Hast Thou but one blessing, O Thou that
art a Father unto Israel?  Or are we so much worse off than our fathers
in the desert?  Nay, are we not in the desert, with no leader to guide
us, no fiery pillar to bid us rest here, or journey thither?  Why hast
Thou given the dearly-beloved of Thy soul into the hands of her enemies?
Is it--is it, because we hid our faces--from Him!"

And to Doucebelle's astonishment, Belasez covered her face with her
apron, and sobbed almost as if her heart were breaking.

"Poor Belasez!" said Doucebelle, gently.  "It is often better to tell
out what troubles us, than to keep it to ourselves."

"If thou wert a daughter of Israel, I should tell it thee, and ask thy
counsel.  I need some one's counsel sorely."

"And canst thou not trust me, Christian though I am?"

"Oh no, it is not that.  Thou dost not understand, Doucebelle.  Thou
couldst not enter into my difficulty unless thou wert of my faith.  That
is the reason.  It is not indeed that I mistrust thee."

"Hast thou told thy father?"

"My father?  No!  He would be as much horrified to hear that such
thoughts had ever entered my head, as the Lady would be if thou wert to
tell her thou didst not believe any longer in thy Christ."

"Then what canst thou do?  Could thy mother help thee, or thy brother?"

"My mother would command me to dismiss such ideas from my mind, on pain
of her curse.  But I cannot dismiss them.  And for Delecresse--I think
he would stab me if he knew."

"What sort of thoughts are they?"

"Wilt thou keep my secret, if I tell thee?"

"Indeed, I will not utter them without thy leave."  Belasez cut off her
silk, laid down the armilaus, and clasped both hands round her knee.

"When your great festivals draw nigh," she said, "four times in every
year, we Israelites are driven into your churches, and forced to listen
to a discourse from one of your priests.  Until that day, I have never
paid any attention to what I deemed blasphemy.  I have listened for a
moment, but at the first word of error, or the first repetition of one
of your sacred names, I have always stopped my ears, and heard no more.
But this last Midsummer, when we were driven into Lincoln Cathedral, the
new Bishop was in the pulpit.  And he spake not like the other priests.
I could not stop my ears.  Why should I, when he read the words of one
of our own prophets, and in the holy tongue, rendering it into French as
he went on?  And Delecresse said it was correctly translated, for I
asked him afterwards.  He saw nothing in it different from usual.  But
it was terrible to me!  He read words that I never knew were in our
Scriptures--concerning One whom it seemed to me must be--_must_ be, He
whom you call Messiah.  `As a root out of a dry ground'--`no form nor
comeliness'--`no beauty that we should desire Him,'--`despised and
rejected of men'--and lastly, `we hid our faces from Him.'  For we did,
Doucebelle,--we did!  I could think of nothing else for a while.  For we
did not hide them from others.  We welcomed Judas of Galilee, and
Barchocheba, and many another who rose up in our midst, claiming to be
sent of God.  But He, who claimed to be The Sent One,--we crucified Him.
We did not crucify them.  We hid our faces from Him, and from Him
alone.  And then I heard more words, for the Bishop kept reading on.
`We all like sheep have gone astray; we have turned every one to his own
way'--ah, was that not true of the dispersed of Judah?--`and the Lord
hath made to meet upon Him the iniquities of us all.'  Doucebelle, it
was like carrying a lamp into a dark chamber, and beholding every thing
in it suddenly illuminated.  Was that what it all meant?  Was the Bishop
right, when he said afterwards, that it was not possible that the blood
of bulls and goats could take away sin?  Were they all not realities, as
I had always thought them, but shadows, pointing forward through the
ages, to the One who was to come, to the Blood which could take away
sin?  Did our own Scripture say so?  `The Man that is My Fellow'--he
read it, from one of our very own prophets.  And `we hid our faces from
Him!'  If He from whom we hid our faces--for there was but one such--if
He were the Sent of God, the Man that is His Fellow, the Lamb whose
blood maketh atonement for the soul,--why then, what could there be for
us but tribulation and wrath and indignation from before the Holy One
for ever?  Was it any marvel that we were punished seventy times for our
sins, if we had done that?"

Belasez drew a long breath, and altered her position.

"And, if we had not done that, what had we done?  The old perplexity
came back on me, worse than ever.  What had we done?  We were not
idolaters any more; we were not profane; we kept the rest of the holy
Sabbath.  Yet the Blessed One was angry with us,--He hid His face from
us: and the centuries went on, and we were exiles still,--still under
the displeasure of our heavenly King.  And what had we done?--if we had
not hidden our faces from Him who was the Man that is His Fellow.  And
then--"

Belasez paused again, and a softer, sadder expression came into her
eyes.

"And then the Bishop read some other words,--I suppose they were from
your sacred books: I do not think they came from ours.  He read that
`because this Man continueth to eternity, untransferable hath He the
priesthood.'  He read that `if any man sin, we have an Advocate with the
Father, and He is the propitiation for our sins.'  And again he read
some grand words, said by this Man Himself,--`I am the First and the
Last, and the Living One: and I was dead, and am alive for evermore; and
with Me are the keys of Sheol and of death.'  Oh, it was so different,
Doucebelle, from your priests' sermons generally!  There was not a word
about that strange thing you call the Church,--not a word about the
maiden whom you worship.  It was all about Him who was to be the Sent of
God.  And I thought--may I be forgiven of the Holy One, if it were
wicked!--I thought this was the Priest that would suit me: this was the
Prophet that could teach me: this was the Man, who, if only I knew that
to do it was truth and not error, was light and not darkness, was life
and not death, I could be content to follow to the world's end.  And how
am I to know it?"

Doucebelle looked up earnestly, and the girls' eyes met.  One of them
was groping in the darkness in search of Christ.  The other had groped
her way through the darkness, and had caught hold of Him.  She did not
see His Face very clearly, but enough so to be sure that it was He.

"Belasez, dear maid, He said one other thing.  `Come unto Me, all ye
that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest.'  Trust me,
the surest way to find out who He is, is to come to Him."

"What meanest thou?  He is not on earth."

"He is where thy need is," answered Doucebelle gently.  "In any
labyrinth out of which we know not the way,--over any grave where our
hearts lie buried,--we can meet Him."

"But how?  Thy words are a riddle to me."

"Call Him, and see if He do not come to thee.  And if He and thou do but
meet, it does not much matter by which track thou earnest thither."

Belasez was silent, and seemed to be thinking deeply.

"Doucebelle," she said at last, "are there two sorts of Christians?
Because thy language is like the Bishop of Lincoln's.  All the priests,
and other Christians, whom I have heard before, spoke in quite another
strain."

"There are live Christians, and dead ones.  I know not of any third
sort."

"The dead ones must be fearfully in the majority!" said Belasez: "I
mean, if thou and the Bishop are live ones."

"That may be true, I am afraid," replied Doucebelle.

"It must be the breathing of the Holy One that makes the difference,"
observed Belasez, very thoughtfully.  "For it is written, that Adonai
formed man of the dust of the earth, and breathed into his nostrils the
neshama of life; and man became a living soul.  Thus He breathed the
life into man at first, in the day of the creation of Adam.  Surely, in
the day when the soul of man becomes alive to the will of the Holy One,
He must breathe into him the second time, that he may live."

"Belasez, what are your sacred books?  You seem to have some."

"We gave them to you," was Belasez's reply.  "But ye have added to
them."

"But the Scriptures were given to the Church!" remonstrated Doucebelle
with some surprise.

"I know not what ye mean by the Church," answered the Jewess.  "They
were ours,--given to our fathers, revealed to them by the Holy One.  We
gave them to you,--or ye filched them from us,--I scarcely know which.
And ye have added other books, which we cannot recognise."

The flash of fervent confidence had died away, and Belasez was once more
the reserved, impenetrable Jewish maiden, to whom Gentile Christians
were unclean animals, and their doctrines to be mentioned only with
scorn and abhorrence.  And as Marie came dancing in at that moment, the
conversation was not renewed.  But it made a great impression upon
Doucebelle, who ever afterwards added to her prayers the
petition,--"Fair Father, Jesu Christ, teach Belasez to know Thee."
["Bel Pere"--then one of the common epithets used in prayer.]

But to every one in general, and to Doucebelle in particular, Belasez
seemed shut up closer than ever.

The January of 1236 came, and with it the royal marriage.  The
ceremonial took place at Canterbury, and Earl Hubert was present, as his
office required of him.  The Countess excused herself on the ground of
slight illness, which would make it very irksome for her to travel in
winter.  Her "intimate enemies" kindly suggested that she was actuated
by pique, since a time had been when she might have been herself Queen
of England.  But they did not know Margaret of Scotland.  Pique and
spite were not in her.  Her real motive was something wholly different.
She was not naturally ambitious, nor did she consider the crown of
England so highly superior to the gemmed coronal of a Scottish Princess;
and she had never held King Henry in such personal regard as to feel any
regret at his loss.  Her true object in remaining at Bury was to
"manage" the marriage of Margaret with Richard de Clare.  It was to be a
clandestine match, except as concerned a few favoured witnesses; and
Earl Hubert was to be kept carefully in the dark till all was safely
over.  The wedding was to be one "_per verba de presenti_" then as
sacred by the canon law as if it had been performed by a priest in full
canonicals; and as a matter of absolute necessity, no witness was
required at all.  But the Countess thought it more satisfactory to have
one or two who could be trusted not to chatter till the time came for
revelation.  She chose Doucebelle along with herself, as the one in
whose silence she had most confidence.  Thus, in that January, in the
dead of the night, the four indicated assembled in the bed-chamber of
the Countess, and the bride and bridegroom, joining hands, said simply--

"In the presence of God and of these persons, I, Richard, take thee,
Margaret, to my wedded wife:" and, "In the same presence I, Margaret,
take thee, Richard, to my wedded husband."

And according to canon and statute law they were legally married, nor
could anything short of a divorce part them again.

"Now then, go to bed," said the Countess, addressing Doucebelle: "and
beware, every soul of you, that not a word comes out till I tell you ye
may speak."

"Belasez, when wilt thou be wed?" inquired Margaret, the next morning.
If the thoughts of the bride ran upon weddings, it was not much to be
wondered.

"Next summer," said Belasez, as coolly as if the question had been when
she would finish her embroidery.  There was no shadow of emotion of any
kind to be seen.

"Oh, art thou handfast?" replied Margaret, interested at once.

"I was betrothed in my cradle," was the answer of the Jewish maiden.

"To a Jew, of course?"

"Of course!  To Leo the son of Hamon of Norwich, my father's greatest
friend."

"Is he a nice young man?"

"I never saw him."

"Why, Belasez!"

"The maidens of my people are strictly secluded.  It is not so with
Christians."

Yet it was less strange to these Christian girls than it would be to the
reader.  They lived in times when the hand of an heiress was entirely at
the disposal of her guardian, who might marry her to some one whom she
had never seen.  As to widows, they were in the gift of the Crown,
unless they chose (as many did) to make themselves safe by paying a high
price for "liberty to marry whom they would."  Even then, such a thing
was known as the Crown disregarding the compact.  Let it be added, since
much good cannot be said of King John, that he at least was careful to
fulfil his engagements of this description.  His son was less
particular.

Margaret looked at Belasez with a rather curious expression.

"And how dost thou like the idea," she asked, "of being wife to one whom
thou hast never seen?"

"I do not think about it," said Belasez, in the same tone as before.
"What is to be will be."

"But what is to be," said Margaret, "may be very delightful, or it may
be very horrid."

"Yes, no doubt," was the cool answer.  "I shall see when the time
comes."

Margaret turned away, with a shrug of her shoulders and a comic look in
her eyes which nearly upset the gravity of the rest.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  These lines are (or were) to be seen, written with a diamond
upon a pane of glass in a window of the Hotel des Pays-Bas, Spa,
Belgium, with the date 1793.  I do not know whether they are to be found
in the writings of any poet.



CHAPTER SIX.

THE NEW CONFESSOR.

  "Had the knight looked up to the page's face,
  No smile the word had won;
  Had the knight looked up to the page's face,
  I ween he had never gone:
  Had the knight looked back to the page's geste,
  I ween he had turned anon,--
  For dread was the woe in the face so young,
  And wild was the silent geste that flung
  Casque, sword, to earth as the boy down-sprung,
  And stood--alone, alone!"

  _Elizabeth Barrett Browning_.

Nobody enjoyed the spring of the year 1236.  Rain poured down, day after
day, as if it were the prelude to a second Deluge.  The Thames
overflowed its banks to such an extent that the lawyers had to return
home in boats, floated by the tide into Westminster Hall.  There was no
progress, except by boat or horse, through the streets of the royal
borough.

Perhaps the physical atmosphere slightly affected the moral and
political, for men's minds were much unsettled, and their tempers very
captious.  The King, with his usual fickleness and love of novelty, had
thrown himself completely into the arms of the horde of poor relations
whom the new Queen brought over with her, particularly of her uncle,
Guglielmo of Savoy, the Bishop of Valentia, whom he constituted his
prime minister.  By his advice new laws were promulgated which extremely
angered the English nobles, who complained that they were held of no
account in the royal councils.  The storms were especially violent in
the North, and there people took to seeing prophetic visions of dreadful
import.  Beside all this, France was in a very disturbed state, which
boded ill to the English provinces across the sea.  The Counts of
Champagne, Bretagne, and La Marche, used strong language concerning the
disgraceful fact that "France, the kingdom of kingdoms, was governed by
a woman," Queen Blanche of Castilla being Regent during the minority of
her son, Saint Louis.  It is a singular fact that while the name of
Blanche has descended to posterity as that of a woman of remarkable
wisdom, discretion, and propriety of life, the popular estimate of her
during her regency was almost exactly the reverse.

Meanwhile, the royal marriage festivities went on uproariously at
Canterbury.  There was not a peacock-pie the less on account either of
the black looks of the English nobles, or of the very shallow condition
of the royal treasury.  To King Henry, who had no intention of paying
any bills that he could help, what did it signify how much things cost,
or whether the sum total were twenty pence or twenty thousand pounds?

The feasts having at last come to an end, King Henry left Canterbury for
Merton Abbey, and Earl Hubert accompanied him.  What became of the Queen
is not stated: nor are we told whether His Majesty thus went "into
retreat" to seek absolution for his past transgressions, or from the
lamentable necessity of paying his debts.

On the 20th of January, the royal penitent emerged from his retreat, to
be crowned with his bride at Westminster.  Earl Hubert of course was
present; and the Countess thought proper to feel well enough to join him
for the occasion.  The ceremony was a most splendid one,--very different
from that first hurried coronation of the young Henry on his father's
death, when, all the regalia having been lost in fording the Wash, he
was crowned with a gold collar belonging to his mother.  The Archbishop
of Canterbury was the officiating priest.  The citizens of London,
hereditary Butlers of England, presented three hundred and sixty cups of
gold and silver, at which the eyes of the royal and acquisitive pair
doubtless glistened, and which, in all probability, were melted down in
a month to pay for the coronation banquet.  King Henry paid a bill just
often enough to prevent his credit from falling into a hopelessly
disreputable condition.  The Earl of Chester--one of Earl Hubert's two
great enemies--bore Curtana, "the sword of Saint Edward," says the monk
of Saint Albans, "to show that he is Earl of the Palace, and has by
right the power of restraining the King if he should commit an error."
Either Earl Ranulph de Blundeville was very neglectful of his office, or
else he must have found it anything but a sinecure.  The Constable of
Chester attended the Earl; his office was to restrain not the King, but
the people, by keeping them off with his wand when they pressed too
close.  The Earl of Pembroke, husband of Princess Marjory of Scotland,
carried a wand before the King, cleared the way, superintended the
banquet, and arranged the guests.  The basin was presented by a handsome
young foreigner, Simon de Montfort, youngest son of the Count de
Montfort, and cousin of the Earl of Chester, to whose good offices in
the first instance he probably owed his English preferment.  He had not
yet become the most powerful man in the kingdom, the darling of the
English people, the husband of the King's sister, the man whom, on his
own testimony,--much as he feared a thunderstorm,--Henry feared "more
than all the thunder and lightning in the world!"  The Earl of Arundel
should have been the cup-bearer; but being too young to discharge the
office, his kinsman the Earl of Surrey officiated for him.  The citizens
of Winchester were privileged to cook the banquet; and the Abbot of
Westminster kept every thing straight by sprinkling holy water.

Once more, the banquet over, the King returned into retreat at Merton to
get rid of his additional shortcomings.  Never was man so pious as this
Monarch,--if piety consisted of tithing mint, anise, and cummin, and of
neglecting the weightier matters of the law, judgment, mercy, and faith.

It was a sharp frosty morning in February.  Margaret, Doucebelle, and
Belasez were at work in the bower, while Father Nicholas was hearing
Marie read Latin in the ante-chamber.  The other chaplains were also
present,--Father Warner, who, with Nicholas, belonged to the Earl; and
Father Bruno, the chaplain of the Countess.  Also present was Master
Aristoteles, the reverend physician of the household.  Fortunately for
herself, Marie was by no means shy, and she feared the face of no human
creature unless it were Father Warner, who, Margaret used to say, had
eyes in the back of his head, and could hear what the cows were thinking
about in the meadow.  He was an extremely strict disciplinarian when on
duty, but he never interfered with the proceedings of a brother tutor.

Father Bruno was a new inmate of the household.  He had come from
Lincoln, with a recommendation from the recently-appointed Bishop, but
had been there too short a time to show his character, since he was a
silent man, who appeared to see everything and to say nothing.

"Very well, my daughter.  Thou hast been a good, attentive maiden this
morning," said Father Nicholas, when the reading was finished.

"Then, Father, will you let me off my sums?" was Marie's quick response.

Marie hated arithmetic, which was Doucebelle's favourite study.

"Nay, my child," said Father Nicholas, in an amused tone; "that is not
my business.  Thou must ask Father Warner."

"Please, Father Warner, will you let me off my sums?" pleaded Marie, but
in a more humble style.

"Certainly not, daughter.  Fetch them at once."

Marie left the room with a grieved face.

"No news abroad, I suppose, my brethren?" suggested Master Aristoteles,
in his brisk, simple, innocent manner.

"Nay, none but what we all knew before," said Father Nicholas.

"Methinks the world wags but slowly," said Master Aristoteles.

"Much too fast," was the oracular reply of Father Warner.

"The pace of the world depends mainly on our own wishes, I take it,"
said Father Nicholas.  "He who would fain walk thinks the world is at a
gallop; while he who desires to gallop reckons the world but jogging at
a market-trot."

"There has been a great massacre of Jews in Spain," said Father Bruno,
speaking for the first time.

All the conversation was plainly audible to the girls in the next room.
When Father Bruno spoke, Belasez's head went up suddenly, and her work
stood still.

"Amen and Alleluia!" said Father Warner, who probably little suspected
that he was using Hebrew words to express his abhorrence of the Hebrews.

"Nay, my brother!" answered Father Bruno, gravely.  "Shall we thank God
for the perdition of human souls?"

"Of course not,--of course not!" interposed Father Nicholas, quickly.
"I am sure our Brother Warner thanked God for the vindication of the
Divine honour."

"And is not the Divine honour more fully vindicated by far," demanded
Father Bruno, "when a soul is saved from destruction, than when it is
plunged therein?"

"Yes, yes, no doubt, no doubt!" eagerly assented Father Nicholas, who
seemed afraid of a _fracas_.

"Curs!" said Father Warner, contemptuously.  "They all belong to their
father the Devil, and to him let them go.  I would not give a farthing
for a Jew's soul in the market."

Belasez's eyes were like stars.

"Brother," said Father Bruno, so gravely that it was almost sadly, "our
Master was not of your way of thinking.  He bade His apostles to begin
at Jerusalem when they preached the good tidings of His kingdom.  Have
we done it?"

Master Aristoteles' "Ah!" might mean anything, as the hearer chose to
take it.

"Of course they did so.  The Church was first at Jerusalem, before Saint
Peter transferred it to Rome," snapped Father Warner.

"Pardon me, my brother.  I did not ask, Did they do so?  I said, Have we
done so?" explained Bruno.

"How could we?" responded Father Nicholas in a perplexed tone.  "I never
came across any of the evil race--holy Mary be my guard!--and if I had
done, I should have crossed over the road, lest they should cast a spell
on me."

Belasez's smile was one of contemptuous amusement.

"_Pure foy_!  If I ever came across one, I should spit in his face!"
cried Warner.

"Two might play at that game," was the cool observation of Bruno.

"I'd have him hung on the new machine if he did!" exclaimed Warner.

The new machine was the gibbet, first set up in England in this year.

"Brethren," said Bruno, "we are verily guilty, one and all.  For weeks
this winter, and I hear also last summer, there has been in this house a
maiden of the Hebrew race, who has never learned the faith of Christ the
Lord, has probably never heard His name except in blasphemy.  Which of
us four of His servants shall answer to God for that child's soul?"

Margaret expected Belasez's eyes to flash, and her lip to curl in scorn.
To her great surprise, the girl caught up her work and went on with it
hastily.  Doucebelle, watching her with deep yet concealed interest,
fancied she saw tears glistening on the samite.

"Really, I never--you put it so seriously, Brother Bruno!--I never
looked at the matter in that way.  I did not think--" and Father
Nicholas came to a full stop.  "You see, I have been so very busy
illuminating that missal for the Lady.  I really never never considered
the thing so seriously."

"Brother Nicholas," answered Bruno, "the Devil was serious enough when
he tempted our mother Eva.  And Christ was serious when He bore away
your sins and mine, and nailed them to His cross.  And the angels of God
are serious, when they look down and see us fighting with sin in the
dark and weary day.  What!  God is serious, and Satan is serious, and
the holy angels are serious,--and can we not be serious?  Will the great
Judge take that answer, think you?  `Lord, I was so busy illuminating
and writing, that I let the maiden slip into perdition, and Thou wilt
find her there.'"

Belasez's head was bowed lower than before.

"Brother Bruno!  You are unreasonable," interposed Warner.  "We all have
our duties to our Lord and Lady.  And as to that contemptible insect in
the Lady's chamber,--well, I do not know what you think, but I would not
scorch my fingers pulling her out of Erebus."

The dark brows of the young Jewess were drawn close together.

"Ah, Brother Warner!" said Bruno.  "Christ my Master scorched His
fingers so much with me, that I cannot hesitate to burn mine in His
service."

Marie and her arithmetic seemed forgotten by all parties.

"I am afraid, Brother Bruno," faltered Father Nicholas, "really afraid,
I may have been too remiss.  The poor girl!--of course, though she is a
Jew--and they are very bad people, very--yet she has a soul to be saved;
yes, undoubtedly.  I will see what I can do.  There are only about a
dozen leaves of the missal,--and then that treatise on grace of
congruity that I promised the Abbot of Ham--and,--let me see!  I believe
I engaged to write something for the Prior of Saint Albans.  What was
it, now?  Where are my tables?  Oh, here!--yes,--ah! that would not take
long: a week might do it, I think.  I will see,--I really will see,
Brother Bruno,--when these little matters are disposed of,--what I can
do for the girl."

"Do!  Give her ratsbane!" sneered Warner laconically.

Bruno's reply was a quotation.

"`While thy servant was busy here and there, he was gone.'"

Then he rose and left the room.

"Dear, dear!" said Father Nicholas.  "Our brother Bruno means well,--
very well indeed, I am sure: but those enthusiastic people like him--
don't you think they are very unsettling, Brother Warner?  Really, he
has made me feel quite uncomfortable.  Why, the world would have to be
turned upside down!  We could never write, nor paint, nor cultivate
letters--we should have to be incessantly preaching and confessing
people."

"Stuff!  The fellow's an ass!" was Father Warner's decision.  "_Ha,
chetife_!--what has become of that little monkey, Damsel Marie?  I must
go and see after her."

And he followed his colleague.  Father Nicholas gathered his papers
together, and from the silence that ensued, the girls gathered that the
ante-chamber was deserted.

"Belasez," said Doucebelle that night, as she was brushing her hair--the
two slept in the wardrobe--"wert thou very angry with Father Bruno, this
morning?"

Belasez looked up quickly.

"With _him_?  No!  I thought--"

But the thought progressed no further till Doucebelle said--"Well?"

"I thought," said Belasez, combing out her own hair very energetically,
"that I had at last found even a Christian priest who was worthy of him
of whom the Bishop of Lincoln preached,--him whom you believe to be
Messiah."

"Then," said Doucebelle, greatly delighted, "thou wilt listen to Father
Bruno, if he talks to thee?"

"I would not if I could help it," was Belasez's equivocal answer.

"Belasez, I cannot quite understand thee.  Sometimes thou seemest so
different from what thou art at other times."

"Because I am different.  Understand me!  Do I understand myself?  The
Holy One--to whom be praise!--He understands us all."

"But sometimes thou art willing to hear and talk, and at others thou art
close shut up like a coffer."

"Because that is how I feel."

"I wish thou wouldst tell thy feelings to Father Bruno."

"I shall wait till he asks me, I think," said Belasez a little drily.

"Well, I am sure he will."

"I am not sure that he will--twice."

"Why, what wouldst thou say to him?"

"He will hear if he wants to know."

And Belasez thereupon "shut up like a coffer," and seemed to have lost
her tongue for the remainder of the night.

Doucebelle determined that, if she could possibly contrive it, without
wounding the feelings of Father Nicholas, her next confession should be
made to Father Bruno.  He seemed to her to be a man made of altogether
different metal from his colleagues.  Master Aristoteles kept himself
entirely to physical ailments, and never heard a confession, except from
the sick in emergency.  Father Nicholas was a very easy confessor, for
his thoughts were usually in his beloved study, and whatever the
confession might be, absolution seemed to follow as a matter of course.
If his advice were asked on any point outside philology in all its
divisions, he generally appeared to be rather taken by surprise, and
almost as much puzzled as his penitent.  His strongest reproof was--

"Ah, that was wrong, my child.  Thou must not do that again."

So that confession to Father Nicholas, while eminently comfortable to a
dead soul, was anything but satisfying to a living one.

Father Warner was a terrible confessor.  His minute questions penetrated
into every corner of soul and body.  He took nothing for granted, good
nor bad.  Absolution was hard to get from him, and not to be had on any
terms but those of severe penance.  And yet it seemed to Doucebelle that
there was an inner sanctuary of her heart from which he never even tried
to lift the veil, a depth in her nature which he never approached.  Was
it because there was no such depth in his, and therefore he necessarily
ignored its existence in another?

In one way or another, they were all miserable comforters.  She wished
to try Father Bruno.

Most unwittingly, Father Nicholas helped her to gain her end by
requesting a holiday.  He had heard a rumour that a Latin manuscript had
been discovered in the library of Saint Albans' Abbey, and Father
Nicholas, in whose eyes the lost books of Livy were of more consequence
than any thing else in the world except the Order of Saint Benedict, was
unhappy till he had seen the manuscript.

The Countess, in the Earl's absence, readily granted his request, and
Doucebelle's fear of hurting the feelings of her kind-hearted though
careless old friend were no longer a bar in the way of consulting Father
Bruno.

Father Warner, who was confessing the other half of the household,
growled his disapprobation when Doucebelle begged to be included in the
penitents of Father Bruno.

"Something new always catches a silly girl's fancy!" said he.

But Doucebelle had no scruple about hurting his feelings, since she did
not believe in their existence.  So when her turn came, she knelt down
in Bruno's confessional.

At first she wondered if he were about to prove like Father Nicholas,
for he did not ask her a single question till she stopped of herself.
Then, instead of referring to any thing which she had said, he put one
of weighty import.

"Daughter, what dost thou know of Jesus Christ?"

"I know," said Doucebelle, "that He came to take away the sins of the
world, and I humbly trust that He will take away mine."

"That He will?" repeated Bruno.  "Is it not done already?"

"I thought, Father, that it would be done when I die."

"What has thy dying to do with that?  If it be done at all, it was done
when He died."

"Then where are my sins, Father?" asked Doucebelle, feeling very much
astonished.  This was a new doctrine to her.  But Bruno was an
Augustinian, and well read in the writings of the Founder of his Order.

"They are where God cannot find them, my child.  Therefore there is
little fear of thy finding them.  Understand me,--if thou hast laid them
upon Christ our Lord."

"I know I have," said Doucebelle in a low voice.

"Then on His own authority I assure thee that He has taken them."

"Father I may I really believe that?"

"May!  Thou must, if thou wouldst not make God a liar."

"But what, then, have I to do?"

"What wouldst thou do for me, if I had rescued thee from a burning
house, and lost my own life in the doing of it?"

"I could do nothing," said Doucebelle, feeling rather puzzled.

"Wouldst thou love or hate me?"

"O Father! can there be any question?"

"And supposing there were some thing left in the world for which thou
knewest I had cared--a favourite dog or cat--wouldst thou leave it to
starve, or take some care of it?"

"I think," was Doucebelle's earnest answer, "I should care for it as
though it were my own child."

"Then, daughter, see thou dost that for Him who did lose His own life in
rescuing thee.  Love Him with every fibre of thine heart, and love what
He has loved for His sake.  He has left with thee those for whom on
earth He cared most,--the poor, the sick, the unhappy.  Be they unto
thee as thy dearest, and He the dearest of all."

This was very unlike any counsel which Doucebelle had ever before
received from a confessor.  There was something here of which she could
take hold.  Not that Father Bruno had suggested a new course of action
so much as that he had supplied a new motive power.  To do good, to give
alms, to be kind to poor and sick people, Doucebelle had been taught
already: but the reason for it was either the abstract notion that it
was the right thing to do, or that it would help to increase her little
heap of human merit.

To all minds, but in particular to an ignorant one, there is an enormous
difference between the personal and the impersonal.  Tell a child that
such a thing must be done because it is right, and the motive power is
faint and vague, not unlikely to be overthrown by the first breath of
temptation.  But let the child understand that to do this thing will
please or displease God, and you have supplied a far stronger energising
power, in the intelligible reference to the will of a living Person.

Doucebelle felt this--as, more or less, we all do.

"Father," she said, after a momentary pause, "I want your advice."

"State thy perplexity, my daughter."

"I hope, Father, you will not be angry; but a few days ago, when you and
the other priests were talking in the ante-chamber about Belasez, the
door was open, and we heard every word in the bower."

"Did Belasez hear what was said?"

"Yes."

"Ha!  What did she say?"

"I asked her, at night, whether what you had said had wounded her.  And
she said, No: but she thought there was one Christian priest who was
like what the Scripture described Christ to be."

"Did she say that?"  There was a tone of tender regret in the priest's
voice.

"She did.  But, Father, I want to know how to deal with Belasez.
Sometimes she will talk to me quite freely, and tell me all her thoughts
and feelings: at other times I cannot get a word out of her."

"Let her alone at the other times.  What is the state of her mind?"

"She seems to have been very much struck, Father, with a sermon from
your Bishop, wherein he proved out of her own Scriptures, she says, that
our Lord is the Messiah whom the Jews believe.  But I do not know if she
has reached any point further than that.  I think she hardly knows what
to believe."

"Only those sermons do good which God preaches," said Bruno.  Perhaps he
spoke rather to himself than to Doucebelle.  "Whenever the maiden will
speak to thee, do not repulse her.  Lead her, to the best of thy power,
to see that Christ is God's one cure for all evil.  Yet He must teach it
first to thyself."

"I think He has done so--a little," answered Doucebelle.  "But, Father,
will you not speak to her?"

"My child, we will both wait upon God, and speak the words He gives us,
at the time He will.  And remember,--whatever blunders men make,--
Belasez is, after the flesh, nearer akin to Him than thou art.  She is
the kinswoman of the Lord Jesus.  Let that thought spur thee on, if thou
faint by the way."

"Father!  Our Lord was not a Jew?"

"He was a Jew, my daughter."

Hardly any news could more have amazed Doucebelle.

"But why then do people use them so harshly?"

"Thou hadst better ask the people," answered Bruno, drily.

"Father, is it right to use Jews so?"

"Thou hadst better ask the Lord."

"What does He say, Father?"

"He said, speaking to Abraham, the father of them all, `I will bless him
that blesseth thee, and curse him that curseth thee.'"

"Oh, I am so glad!" cried Doucebelle.  "If you please, Father, I could
not help loving Belasez: but I tried hard not to do so, because I
thought it was wicked.  It cannot be wrong to love a Jew, if Christ
Himself were one."

Bruno did not reply immediately.  When he did, it was with a slight
quiver in his voice which surprised Doucebelle.

"It can never be wrong to love," he said.  "But, daughter, let not thy
love stop at liking the maid's company.  Let it go on till thou canst
take it into Heaven."

The strangest of all strange ideas was this to Doucebelle.  She had been
taught that love was always a weakness, and only too frequently a sin.
That so purely earthly a thing could be taken into Heaven astonished her
beyond measure.

"Father!" she said, in a tone of mingled amazement and inquiry.

"What now, my daughter?"

"People always speak of love as weak, if not wicked."

"People often talk of what they do not understand, my child.  `God is
love.'  Think not, therefore, that God resembles a worldly fancy which
springs to-day, and fades away to-morrow.  His is the heavenly love
which can never die, which is ready to sacrifice all things, which so
looks to the true welfare of the beloved that it will give thee any
earthly suffering rather than see thee sink into perdition by thy sins.
This is real love, daughter: and thou canst not sin in giving it to
Belasez or to any other."

"Yet, Father," said Doucebelle in a puzzled tone, "the religious give up
love when they go into the cloister.  I do not understand.  A Sister of
Saint Ursula may not leave her convent, even if her own mother lies
dying, and pleads hard to see her.  And though some priests do wed,"--
this had not yet, in England, ceased to be the case--"yet people always
seem to think the celibate priests more holy, as if that were more in
accordance with the will of God.  Yet God tells us to love each other.
I cannot quite understand."

If Doucebelle could have seen, as well as spoken, through the
confessional grating, assuredly she would have stopped sooner.  For the
agony that was working in every line of Father Bruno's face would have
been terrible to her to see.  But she only thought that it was a long
while before he answered her, and she wondered at the hard, constrained
tone in his voice.

"Child!" he said, "does any one but God `quite understand'?  Do we
understand ourselves?--and how much less each other?  It is only love
that understands.  He who most loves God will best understand men.  And
for the rest,--O Lord who hast loved us, pardon the blunders and
misunderstandings of Thy people, and save Thy servants that trust in
Thee!--Now go, my child,--unless thou hast more to say.  _Absolvo te_."

Doucebelle rose and retired.  But she did not know that Father Bruno
heard no more confessions.  She only heard that he was not at home when
dinner was served; and when he appeared at supper, he looked very worn
and white, as if after a weary journey.



CHAPTER SEVEN.

THE SHADOW OF LONG AGO.

  "'Tis a fair, fair face, in sooth:
  Larger eyes and redder mouth
  Than mine were in my first youth."

  _Elizabeth Barrett Browning_.

So faithfully had the Countess adhered to her plighted word that Belasez
should be seen by no one, that not one of the priests had yet beheld her
except Father Nicholas, and the meeting in that case had been accidental
and momentary.  But when Father Bruno announced to his brother priests
his intention of seeking an interview with the Jewish maiden, Father
Nicholas shook his head waggishly.

"Have a care of the toils of Satan, Brother Bruno!" said he.  "The
maiden may have the soul of a fiend, for aught I wot, yet hath she the
face of an angel."

"I thank thee.  There is no fear!" answered Bruno, with a smile which
made him look sadder.

The Countess had not returned from the coronation festivities, and the
girls were alone in Margaret's bower, when Father Bruno entered, with
"God save all here!"

Belasez rose hastily, and prepared to withdraw.

"Wait, my child," said the priest, gently: "I would speak with thee."

But when she turned in answer, and he saw her face, some strange and
terrible emotion seemed to convulse his own.

"_Domine, in Te speravi_!" fell from his trembling lips, as if he
scarcely realised what he was saying.

Belasez looked at him with an astonished expression.  Whatever were the
cause of his singular emotion, it was evidently neither understood nor
shared by her.

With a manifest effort of self-control, Bruno recovered himself.

"Sit down, daughters," he said: for all had risen in reverence to the
priest: and he seated himself on the settle, whence he had a full view
of Belasez.

"And what is thy name, my daughter?"

"Belasez, at your service."

"And thy father's name?"

"Abraham of Norwich, if it please you."

"Abraham--of Norwich!  Not--not the son of Ursel of Norwich?"

"The same."

Again that look of intense pain crossed Bruno's face.

"No wonder!" he said, speaking not to Belasez.  "The very face--the very
look!  No wonder!--And thy mother?"

"My mother is Licorice, the daughter of Kokorell of Lincoln."

Bruno gave a little nod, as if he had known it before.

"Hast thou any brethren or sisters?"

"One brother only; his name is Delecresse."

The reply seemed to extinguish Bruno's interest.  For a moment, as if
his thoughts were far elsewhere, he played with a morsel of sewing-silk
which he had picked up from the floor.

"The Lord is wiser than men," he said at last, as if that were the
conclusion to which his unseen thoughts had led him.

"Yes; and better," answered the young Jewess.

"And better," dreamily repeated the priest.  "We shall know that one
day, when we wake up to see His Face."

"Amen," said Belasez.  "`When we awake up after Thy likeness,' saith
David the Prophet, `we shall be satisfied with it.'"

"`Satisfied!' echoed Bruno.  Art thou satisfied, my daughter?"

The answering "No!" appeared to come from the depths of Belasez's heart.

"Shall I tell thee wherefore?  There is but one thing that satisfies the
soul of man.  Neither in earth nor in Heaven is any man satisfied with
aught else.  My child, dost thou know what that is?"

Belasez looked up, her own face working a little now.

"You mean," she said, "the Man whom ye call Christ."

"I mean Him."

"I know nothing about Him."  And Belasez resumed her embroidery, as if
that were of infinitely greater consequence.  "Dost thou know much about
happiness?"

"Happiness!" exclaimed the girl.  "I know what mirth is.  Do you mean
that?  Or, I know what it is to feel as if one cared for nothing.  Is
that your meaning?"

"Happiness," said Bruno, "is what thy King meant when he said, `I shall
be satisfied with it.'  Dost thou know that?"

Belasez drew a long breath, and shook her head sadly.

"No," she said.  "I have never known that."

"Because thou hast never known Jesus Christ."

"I know He said, `I am the life,'" responded the girl slowly.  "And life
is not worth much.  Perhaps it might be,--if one were satisfied."

"Poor child!  Is life not worth much to thee?" answered the priest in a
pitying tone.  "And thou art very young--not much over twenty."

"I am under twenty.  I am just eighteen."

Once more Bruno's face was convulsed.

"Just eighteen!" he said.  "Yes--Licorice's child!  _Yet_ she had no
pity.  Aye me--just eighteen!"

"Do you know my mother?" said Belasez in accents of mingled surprise and
curiosity.

"I did--eighteen years ago."

And Bruno rose hastily, as if he wished to dismiss the subject.
Margaret dropped on her knees and requested his blessing, which he gave
as though his thoughts were far away: and then he left the room slowly,
gazing on Belasez to the last.

This was the first, but not by any means the last, interview between
Father Bruno and the Jewish maiden.  A month later, Doucebelle asked
Belasez how she liked him.

"I do not like him; I love him," said Belasez, with more warmth than
usual.

"What a confession!" answered Doucebelle, playfully.

"Oh, not that sort of love!" responded Belasez with a tinge of scorn.
"I think it must be the sort that we can take into Heaven with us."

The next morning, Levina announced to the Countess, in a tone of
gratified spite, that two persons were in the hall--an old man, unknown
to her, and the young Jew, Delecresse.  He had come for his sister.

Belasez received the news of her recall at first with a look of blank
dismay, and then with a shower of passionate tears.  Her deep attachment
to her Christian friends was most manifest.  She kissed the hand of the
Countess and Margaret, warmly embraced Doucebelle, and then looked round
as if something were wanting still.

"What is it, my maid?" kindly asked the Countess.

"Father Bruno!" faltered Belasez through her tears.  "Oh, I must say
farewell to Father Bruno!"

The Countess looked astonished, for she knew not that Bruno and Belasez
had ever met.  A few words from Doucebelle explained.  Still the
Countess was extremely dissatisfied.

"My maid," she said, "thy father may think I have not kept my word.  I
ought to have told Father Bruno.  I never thought of it, when he first
came.  I am very sorry.  Has he talked with thee on matters of religion
at all?"

"Yes."  Belasez explained no further.

"Dear, dear!" said the Countess.  "He meant well, I suppose.  And of
course it is better thy soul should be saved.  But I wish he had less
zeal and more discretion."

"Lady," said Belasez, pausing for an instant, "if ever I enter the
kingdom of the Blessed One above, I think I shall owe it to the Bishop
of Lincoln and to Father Bruno."

"That is well, no doubt," responded the Countess, in a very doubtful
tone.  "Oh dear! what did make Father Bruno think of coming up here?"

As Belasez passed down towards the hall, Father Bruno himself met her on
the stairs.

"Whither goest thou, my child?" he asked in some surprise.

"I am going--away."  Belasez's tears choked her voice.

"To thy father's house?"

She bowed.

"Without Christ?"

"No, Father, not without Him," sobbed the girl.  "Nor,--if you will
grant it to me at this moment--without baptism."

"Dost thou believe that Jesus Christ is the Son of God?"

"I do."

Bruno hesitated a minute, while an expression of deep pain flitted over
his face.

"I cannot do it, Belasez."

"O Father! do you reject me?"

"God forbid, my child!  I do not reject thee in any wise: I only reject
myself.  Belasez, long years ago, Licorice thy mother did me a cruel
wrong.  If I baptise thee, I shall feel it to be my revenge on her.  And
I have no right thus to defile the snow-white robe of thy baptism
because my hands are not clean, nor to mingle the revenge of earth with
the innocence of Heaven.  Wait a moment."

And he turned and went rapidly down the stairs.  Belasez waited till he
came back.  He was accompanied by Father Warner.  She trembled at the
ordeal which she guessed to await her, and soon found that she was not
far wrong.  Father Warner took her into the empty chapel, and required
her to repeat the Creed (which of course she could not do), to tell him
which were the seven deadly sins, and what the five commandments of the
Church.  Belasez had never heard of any of them.  Warner shook his head
sternly, and wondered what Brother Bruno could possibly mean by
presenting this ignorant heathen as a fit candidate for baptism.

Belasez felt as if God and man alike would have none of her.  Warner
recommended her to put herself under the tuition of some priest at
Norwich--which was to her a complete impossibility--and perhaps in a
year or thereabouts, if she were diligent and obedient in following the
orders of her director, she might hope to receive the grace of holy
baptism.

She went out sobbing, and encountered Bruno at the head of the stairs.

"O Father Bruno!" faltered the girl.  "Father Warner will not do it!"

"I was afraid so," said Bruno, sadly.  "I should not have thought of
asking him had my Brother Nicholas been at home.  Well, daughter, this
is no fault of thine.  Remember, we baptise only with water: but He
whose ministers we are can baptise thee with the Holy Ghost and with
fire.  Let Him be thy Shepherd to provide for thee; thy Priest to
absolve thee; thy King to command thine heart's allegiance.  So dwell
thou to Him in this world now, that hereafter thou mayest dwell with Him
for ever."

Belasez stooped and kissed his hand.  He gave her his blessing in
fervent tones, bade her a farewell which gave him unmistakable pain, and
let her depart.  Belasez drew her veil closely over her face, and joined
Delecresse and her father's old friend Hamon in the hall.

"What a time thou hast been!" said Delecresse, discontentedly.  "Do let
us go now.  I want to be outside this accursed Castle."

But to Belasez it seemed like stepping out of the sunlit fold into the
dreary wilderness beyond.

As they passed the upper end of the hall, Belasez paused for an instant
to make a last reverence to Margaret, who sat there talking with her
unacknowledged husband, Sir Richard de Clare.  The black scowl on the
face of her brother drew her attention at once.

"Who is that young Gentile?" he demanded.

"Sir Richard de Clare, Lord of Gloucester."

"What hast thou against him?" asked old Hamon.

"That is the youth that threw my cap into a pool, a year ago, and called
me a Jew cur," said Delecresse, between his teeth.

"Pooh, pooh!" said old Hamon.  "We all have to put up with those little
amenities.  Never mind it, child."

"I'll never mind it--till the time come!" answered Delecresse, in an
undertone.  "Then--I think I see how to wipe it off."

Belasez found her mother returned from Lincoln.  She received a warm
welcome from Abraham, a much cooler one from Licorice, and was very
glad, having arrived at home late, to go to bed in her own little
chamber, which was inside that of her parents.  She soon dropped asleep,
but was awoke ere long by voices in the adjoining room, distinctly
audible through the curtain which alone separated the chambers.  They
spoke in Spanish, the language usually employed amongst themselves by
the English Sephardim.

"_Ay de mi_, [`Woe is me!'] that it ever should have been so!" said the
voice of Licorice.  "What did the shiksah [Note 1] want with her?"

"I told thee, wife," answered Abraham, in a slightly injured tone, "she
wanted the child to embroider a scarf."

"And I suppose thou wert too anxious to fill thy saddle-bags to care for
the danger to her?"

"There was no danger at all, wife.  The Countess promised all I asked
her.  And I made thirteen gold pennies clear profit.  Thou canst see the
child is no worse--they have been very kind to her: she said as much."

"Abraham, son of Ursel, thou art a very wise man!"

"What canst thou mean, Licorice?"

"`Kind to her!'  If they had starved her and beaten her, there might
have been no harm done.  Canst thou not see that the girl's heart is
with her Christian friends?  Why, she had been crying behind her veil,
quietly, all the journey."

"Well, wife?  What then?"

"`What then?'  Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob!  `What then?'  Why, then--she
will do like Anegay."

"The God of our fathers forbid it!" cried Abraham, in tones of horror
and distress.

"It is too late for that," said Licorice, with a short, contemptuous
laugh.  "Thou shouldst have said that a year ago, and have kept the
child at home."

"We had better marry her at once," suggested Abraham, still in a voice
of deep pain.

"`There are no birds in last year's nest,' old man," was the response.
"Marry her or let it alone, the child's heart is gone from us.  She has
left behind her in yonder Castle those for whom she cares more than for
us, and, I should not wonder also, a faith dearer to her than ours.  It
will be Anegay over again.  Ah, well!  Like to like!  What else could we
expect?"

"Can she hear us, Licorice?"

"Not she!  She was fast asleep an hour ago."

"Wife, if it be so, have we not deserved it?"

"Abraham, don't be a fool!" cried Licorice, so very snappishly that it
sounded as if her conscience might have responded a little to the
accusation.

"I cannot but think thou didst evil, Licorice,--thou knowest how and
when."

"I understand thee, of course.  It was the only thing to do."

"I know thou saidst so," answered Abraham in an unconvinced tone.  "Yet
it went to my heart to hear the poor child's sorrowful moan."

"Thy heart is stuffed with feathers."

"I would rather it were so than with stones."

"Thanks for the compliment!"

"Nay, I said nothing about thee.  But, Licorice, if it be as thou
thinkest, do not let us repeat that mistake."

"I shall repeat no mistakes, I warrant thee."

The conversation ceased rather suddenly, except for one mournful
exclamation from Abraham,--"Poor Anegay!"

Anegay! where had Belasez heard that name before?  It belonged to no
friend or relative, so far as she knew.  Yet that she had heard it
before, and that in interesting connection with something, she was
absolutely certain.

Belasez dropped asleep while she was thinking.  It seemed to her that
hardly a minute passed before she woke again, to hear her mother moving
in the next room, and to see full daylight streaming in at the window.

And suddenly, just as she awoke, it rushed upon her when and how she had
heard of Anegay.

She saw herself, a little child, standing by the side of Licorice.  With
them was old Belya, the mother of Hamon, and before them stood an
enormous illuminated volume at which they were looking.  Belasez found
it impossible to remember what had been said by Belya; but her mother's
response was as vivid in her mind as if the whole scene were of
yesterday.

"Hush!  The child must not know.  Yes, Belya, thou art right.  That was
taken from Anegay's face."

What was it that was taken?  And dimly before Belasez's mental eyes a
picture seemed to grow, in which a king upon his throne, and a woman
fainting, were the principal figures.  Esther before Ahasuerus!

That was it, of course.  And Belasez sprang up, with a determination to
search through her father's books, and to find the picture which had
been taken from Anegay's face.

But, after all, who was Anegay?

Licorice was in full tide of business and porridge-making, in her little
kitchen, when Belasez presented herself with an apology for being late.

"Nay, folks that go to bed at nine may well not rise till five," said
Licorice, graciously.  "Throw more salt in here, child, and fetch the
porringers whilst I stir it.  Call thy father and Delecresse,--breakfast
will be ready by the time they are."

Breakfast was half over when Licorice inquired of her daughter whom she
had seen at Bury Castle.

"Oh! to speak to, only the Countess and her daughter, Damsel Margaret,
and the other young damsels, Doucebelle, Eva, and Marie; and Levina, the
Lady's dresser.  They showed me some others through the window, so that
I knew their names and faces."

Belasez quietly left out the priests.

"And what knights didst thou see there?"

"Through the window?  Sir Hubert the Earl, and Sir Richard of
Gloucester, and Sir John the Earl's son, and Sir John de Averenches.
Oh!  I forgot Dame Hawise, Sir John's wife; but I never saw much of
her."

"There was no such there as one named Bruno de Malpas, I suppose?" asked
Licorice, with assumed carelessness.  "No, there was no knight of that
name."  But in her heart Belasez felt that the name belonged to the
priest, Father Bruno.

A few more questions were asked her, of no import, and then they rose.
When Licorice set her free from household duties, Belasez took her way
to the little closet over the porch which served as her father's
library.  He was the happy possessor of eleven volumes,--a goodly number
at that date.  Eight she passed by, knowing them to contain no pictures.
The ninth was an illuminated copy of the Brut, which of course began,
as all chronicles then did, with the creation; but Belasez looked
through it twice without finding any thing to satisfy her.  Next came
the Chronicle of Benoit, but the illuminations in this were merely
initials and tail-pieces in arabesque.  There was only one left, and it
was the largest volume in the collection.  Belasez could not remember
having ever opened it.  She pulled it down now, just missing a sprained
wrist in the process, and found it to be a splendid copy of the
Hagiographa, with full-page pictures, glowing with colours and gold.  Of
course, the illuminations had been executed by Christian hands; but all
these books had come to Abraham in exchange for bad debts, and he was
not so consistent as to refuse to look at the representations of created
things, however wicked he might account it to produce them.  Belasez
turned over the stiff leaves, one after another, till she reached the
Book of Esther.  Yes, surely that was the picture she remembered.  There
sat the King Ahasuerus on a curule chair, wearing a floriated crown and
a mantle clasped at the neck with a golden fibula; and there fainted
Queen Esther in the arms of her ladies, arrayed in the tight gown, the
pocketing sleeve, the wimple, and all other monstrosities of the early
Plantagenet era.  A Persian satrap, enclosed in a coat of mail and a
surcoat with a silver shield, whereon an exceedingly rampant red lion
was disporting itself, appeared to be coming to the help of his liege
lady; while a tall white lily, in a flower-pot about twice the size of
the throne, occupied one side of the picture.  To all these details
Belasez paid no attention.  The one thing at which she looked was the
face of the fainting Queen, which was turned full towards the spectator.
It was a very lovely face of a decidedly Jewish type.  But what made
Belasez glance from it to the brazen mirror fixed to the wall opposite?
Was it Anegay of whom Bruno had been thinking when he murmured that she
was so like some one?  Undoubtedly there was a likeness.  The same pure
oval face, the smooth calm brow, the dark glossy hair: but it struck
Belasez that her own features, as seen in the mirror, were the less
prominently Jewish.

And, once more, who was Anegay?

How little it is possible to know of the innermost heart of our nearest
friends!  Belasez went through all her duties that day, without rousing
the faintest suspicion in the mind of her mother that she had heard a
syllable of the conversation between her parents the night before.  Yet
she thought of little else.  Her household work was finished, and she
sat in the deep recess of the window at her embroidery, when Delecresse
came and stood beside her.

"Belasez, who was that damsel that sat talking with my Lord of
Gloucester in the hall when we passed through?"

"That was the Damsel Margaret, daughter of Sir Hubert the Earl."

"What sort of a maiden is she?"

"Very sweet and gentle.  I liked her extremely.  She was always most
kind to me."

"Is she attached to my Lord of Gloucester?"

It was a new idea to Belasez.

"Really, I never thought of that, Cress.  But I should not at all wonder
if she be.  She is constantly talking of him."

"Does he care for her?"

"I fancy he does, by the way I have seen him look up at her windows."

"Yes, I could tell that from his face."

The tone of her brother's voice struck Belasez unpleasantly.

"Cress! what dost thou mean?"

"It is a pity that the innocent need suffer with the guilty," answered
Delecresse, contemptuously.  "But it mostly turns out so in this world."

Belasez grasped her brother's wrists.

"Cress, thou hast no thought of revenging thyself on Sir Richard of
Gloucester for that boyish trick he once played on thee?"

"I'll be even with him, Belasez.  No man--least of all a Christian dog--
shall insult me with impunity."

"O Cress, Cress!  Thou must not do it.  Hast thou forgotten that
vengeance belongeth to the Holy One, to whom be glory?  And for such a
mere nothing as that!"

"Nothing!  Dost thou call it nothing for a son of Abraham to be termed a
Jew cur by one of those creeping things of Gentiles?  Is not the day at
hand when they shall be our ploughmen and vine-dressers?"

"Well, then," answered Belasez, assuming a playfulness which she was far
from feeling, "when Sir Richard is thy ploughman, thou canst knock his
cap off."

"Pish!  They like high interest, these Christians.  I'll let them have
it, the other way about."

"Cress, what dost thou mean to do?"

"I mean that he shall pay me every farthing that he owes," said
Delecresse through his clenched teeth.  "I cannot have it in gold coins,
perhaps.  It will suit me as well in drops of blood,--either from his
veins or from his heart."

"Delecresse, thou _shalt not_ touch the Damsel Margaret, if that be the
meaning of those terrible words."

"I am not going to touch her," replied Delecresse, scornfully, "even
with the tongs he took to my cap.  I would not touch one of the vile
insects for all the gold at Norwich!"

"But what dost thou mean?"

"Hold thou thy peace.  I was a fool to tell thee."

"What art thou going to do?" persisted Belasez.

"What thou wilt hear when it is done," said Delecresse, walking away.

He left poor Belasez in grief and terror.  Some misery, of what sort she
could not even guess, was impending over her poor friend Margaret.  How
was it possible to warn her?--and of what was she to be warned?

A few minutes were spent in reflection, and then Belasez's work was
hastily folded, and she went in search of her father.  Abraham listened
with a perplexed and annoyed face.

"That boy always lets his hands go before his head!  But what can I do,
daughter?  In good sooth, I would not willingly see any injury done to
the Christians that have been so kind to thee.  Where is Cress?"

"He went into the kitchen," said Belasez.  Abraham shuffled off in that
direction, in the loose yellow slippers which were one of the recognised
signs of a Jew.

"Delecresse is just gone out," he said, coming back directly.  "I will
talk to him when he comes in."

But twelve days elapsed before Delecresse returned.

"Cress, thou wilt not do anything to Sir Richard of Gloucester?"
earnestly pleaded Belasez, when she found him alone.

"No," said Delecresse, with a glitter in his eyes which was not
promising.

"Hast thou done any thing?"

"All I mean to do."

"O Cress, what hast thou done?"

"Go to bed!" was the most lucid explanation which all the eager
entreaties of Belasez could obtain from her brother.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  The feminine singular of the Hebrew word rendered, in the A.V.,
"creeping things."  Dr Edersheim tells us that this flattering term is
commonly employed in speaking of a Gentile.



CHAPTER EIGHT.

IN THE DARK.

  "I trust Thee, though I cannot see
  Thy light upon my pathway shine;
  However dark, Lord, let it be
  Thy way, not mine!"

"If it stand with your good liking, may a man have speech of Sir Piers
de Rievaulx?"

It was a tall youth who asked the question, and he stood under the porch
of a large Gothic house, on the banks of the Thames near Westminster.
The night was wet and dark, and it was the second of April 1236.

"And who art thou, that would speak with the knight my master?"

"What I have to say to him is of consequence.  Who I may be does not so
much matter."

"Well said, my young cockerel!  Thou crowest fairly."  The porter
laughed as he set down the lantern which he had been holding up to the
youth's face, and took down a large key from the peg on which it hung.
"What shall I say to my master touching thee?"

"Say, if it please you, that one would speak with him that hath
important tidings, which closely concern the King's welfare."

"They were rash folks that trusted a slip like thee with important
tidings."

"None trusted me."

"Eavesdropping, eh?  Well, thou canst keep thine own counsel, lad as
thou art.  I will come back to thee shortly."

It was nearly half an hour before the porter returned; but the youth
never changed his position, as he stood leaning against the side of the
porch.

"Come in," said the porter, holding the wicket open.  "Sir Piers will
see thee.  I told him, being sent of none, thou wert like to have no
token."

The unknown visitor followed the porter in silence through the paved
courtyard, up a flight of stone steps, and into a small chamber, hung
with blue.  Here, at a table covered with parchments, sat one of King
Henry's ministers, Sir Piers de Rievaulx, son of the Bishop of
Winchester, the worst living foe of Earl Hubert of Kent.  He was on the
younger side of middle age, and was only not quite so bad a man as the
father from whom he inherited his dark gleaming eyes, lithe quick
motions, intense prejudices, and profound artfulness of character.

"Christ save you!  Come forward," said Sir Piers.  "Shut the door,
Oliver, and let none enter till I bid it.--Now, who art thou, and what
wouldst thou with me?"

"I am Delecresse, son of Abraham of Norwich."

"Ha!  A Jew, of course.  Thy face matches thy name.  Now, thy news?"

"Will my noble knight be pleased to tell his unworthy servant if he
likes the taste of revenge?"

Delecresse despised himself for the words he used.  A son of Israel to
humble himself thus to one of the Goyim!  But it was expedient that the
"creeping thing" should be flattered and gratified, in order to induce
him to act as a tool.

"Decidedly!" replied Sir Piers, looking fixedly at Delecresse.

"Your Honour hates Sir Hubert of Kent, or I am mistaken?"

"Ha, _pure foy_!  Worse than I hate the Devil."

The Devil was very near to both at that moment.

"If I help you to be revenged on him, will you pay me by giving me my
revenge on another?"

Delecresse had dropped alike his respectful words and subservient
manner, and spoke up now, as man to man.

"`Turn about is fair play,' I suppose," said Sir Piers.  "If thou seek
not revenge on any friend of mine, I will."

"I seek it on Sir Richard de Clare, the young Earl of Gloucester."

"_He_ is no friend of mine!" said Sir Piers, between his teeth.  "His
father married the woman I wanted.  I should rather enjoy it than
otherwise."

"The Lady his mother yet lives."

"What is that to me?  She is an old hag.  What do I care for her now?"

Delecresse felt staggered for a moment.  Bad as he was in one respect,
he was capable of personal attachment as well as of hatred; and Sir
Piers' delicate notions of love rather astonished him.  But Sir Piers
was very far from being the only man who was--or is--incapable of
entertaining any others.  Delecresse soon recovered himself.  He was too
anxious to get his work done, to quarrel with his tools.  It was
gratifying, too, to discover that Sir Piers was not a likely man to be
troubled by any romantic scruples about breaking the heart of the young
Margaret.  Delecresse himself had been unpleasantly haunted by those,
and had with some difficulty succeeded in crushing them down and turning
the key on them.  Belasez's pleading looks, and Margaret's bright,
pretty face, persisted in recurring to his memory in a very provoking
manner.  Sir Piers was evidently the man who would help him to forget
them.

"Well!--go on," said the Minister, when Delecresse hesitated.

"I have good reason to believe that Sir Richard is on the point of
wedding the Damsel Margaret de Burgh; nay, I am not sure if they are not
married clandestinely.  Could not this be used as a handle to ruin both
of them?"

The two pairs of eyes met, and a smile which was anything but angelic
broke over the handsome countenance of Sir Piers.

"Not a bad idea for one so young," he remarked.  "Is it thine own?"

"My own," answered Delecresse, shortly.

"I could make some use of thee in the Kings service."

"Thank you," said Delecresse, rather drily.  "I do not wish to have
_more_ to do with the Devil and his angels than I find necessary."

Sir Piers broke into a laugh.  "Neat, that!  I suppose I am one of the
angels?  But I am surprised to hear such a sentiment from a Jew."

Nothing is more inconsistent than sin.  In his anxiety to gratify his
revenge, Delecresse was enduring patiently at the hands of Sir Piers far
worse insults than that over which he had so long brooded from Richard
de Clare.  He kept silence.

"It really is a pity," observed Sir Piers, complacently surveying
Delecresse, "that such budding talent as thine should be cast away upon
trade.  Thou wouldst make far more money in secret service.  It would be
easy to change thy name.  Keep thy descent quiet, and be ready to eat
humble-pie for a short time.  There is no saying to what thou mightest
rise in this world."

"And the other?"  Delecresse felt himself an unfledged cherub by the
side of Sir Piers.

"Bah!"  Sir Piers snapped his fingers.  "What do such as we know about
that?  There is no other world.  If there were, the chances are that
both of us would find ourselves very uncomfortable there.  We had better
stay in this as long as we can."

"As you please, Sir Knight.  I am not ready to sell my soul for gold."

"Only for revenge, eh?  Well, that's not much better.  There are a few
scruples about thee, my promising lad, which thou wouldst find it
necessary to sacrifice in the service.  Some soft-hearted mother or
sister, I imagine, hath instilled them into thee.  Women are always
after some mischief.  I wish there were none."

What did Delecresse know of the momentary pang of sensation which had
pricked that hard, seared heart, as for one second memory brought before
him the loving face of a little child, over whose fair head for thirty
years the churchyard daisies had been blooming?  Could he hear the
tender, pleading voice of the baby sister, begging dear Piers not to
hurt her pet kitten, and she would give him all the sweetmeats Aunt
Theffania sent her?  Such moments do come to the hardest hearts: and
they usually leave them harder.  Before Delecresse had found an answer,
Sir Piers was himself again.

"Thou hast done me a service, boy: and I will take care that thy friend
Sir Richard feels the goad as well as my beloved Earl Hubert.  Take this
piece of gold.  Nay, it will not burn thee.  'Tis only earthly metal.
Thou wilt not?  As thou list.  The saints keep thee!  Ah,--I forgot!
Thou dost not believe in the saints.  Bah! no more do I.  Only words,
lad,--all words.  Fare thee well."

A few minutes later Delecresse found himself in the street.  He was
conscious of a very peculiar and highly uncomfortable mixture of
feelings, as if one part of his nature were purely angelic, and the
other absolutely diabolical.  He felt almost as if he had come direct
from a personal interview with Satan, and his spirit had been soiled and
degraded by the contact.  Yet was he any better than Sir Piers, except
in lack of experience and opportunity?  He leaned over the parapet as he
passed, and watched the dark river flowing silently below.

"I wish I had not done it!" came in muttered accents from his lips at
last.  "I do almost, really, wish I had not done it!"

And then, as the reader knows, he went home and snubbed his sister.

Abraham could get nothing out of his son except some scornful platitudes
concerning the "creeping creatures."  Not a shred of information would
Delecresse give.  He was almost rude to his father--a very high crime in
the eyes of a Jew: but it was because he was so intensely dissatisfied
with himself.

"O my son, light of mine eyes, what hast thou done!" mournfully
ejaculated old Abraham, as he resigned the attempt to influence or
reason with Delecresse.

"Done?--made those vile Gentiles wince, I hope!" retorted Licorice.  "I
hate every man, woman, and child among them.  I should like to bake them
all in the oven!"

And she shut the door of that culinary locality with a bang.  Belasez
looked up with saddened eyes, and her mother noticed them.

"Abraham, son of Ursel," she said that night, when she supposed her
daughter to be safely asleep in the inner chamber, "when dost thou mean
to have this maiden wedded?"

"I do not know, wife.  Would next week do?"

Next week was always Abraham's time for doing every thing.

"If thou wilt.  The gear has all been ready long ago.  There is only the
feast to provide."

"Then I suppose I had better speak to Hamon," said Abraham, in the tone
of a man who would have been thankful if allowed to let it alone.  "It
is time, I take it?"

"It is far past the time, husband," said Licorice.  "That girl's heart,
as I told thee, is gone after the creeping things.  Didst thou not see
the look in her eyes to-night?  Like to like--blood to blood!  It made
mine boil to behold it."

"Forbid it, God of our fathers!" fervently ejaculated Abraham.
"Licorice, dost thou think the child has ever guessed--"

"Hush, husband, lest she should chance to awake.  Guessed!  No, and she
never shall."

Belasez's ears, it is unnecessary to say, were strained to catch every
sound.  What was she not to guess?

"Art thou sure that Genta knows nothing?"

Genta was the daughter of Abraham's brother Moss.

"Nothing that would do much harm," said Licorice, but in rather a
doubtful tone.  "Beside, Genta can hold her peace."

"Ay, if she choose.  But suppose she did not?  She knows, does she not,
about--Anegay?"

"Hush!  Well, yes--something.  But not what would do most mischief."

"What, about her marriage with--"

"Man I do, for pity's sake, give over, or thou wilt blurt all out!  Do
only think, if the child were to hear!  Trust me, she would go back to
that wasp's nest to-morrow.  No, no!  Just listen to me, son of Ursel.
Get her safely married before she knows anything.  Leo may be relied
upon to keep her in safe seclusion: and when she has a husband and
half-a-dozen children to tie her down, heart and soul, to us, she will
give over pining after the Gentiles."

Belasez was conscious of a rising repugnance, which she had never felt
before, to this marriage about to be forced upon her.  Not personally to
Leo, of whom she knew nothing; but to this tie contemplated for her,
which was to be an impassable barrier between her and all her Christian
friends.

"Well!" sighed Abraham.  He evidently did not like it.  "I suppose,
then, I must let the Cohen [Note 1] know about it."

"If it be not already too late," responded Licorice, dubiously.  "If
only this second visit had not happened!  There was less harm done the
first time, and I do not quite understand it.  Some stronger feeling has
taken possession of her now.  Either her faith is shaken--"

"May the All-Merciful defend us from such horror!"

"Well, it is either that, or there is love in her heart--a deeper love
than for the Gentile woman, and the girls of whom she talks.  She likes
them, I do not doubt; but she would never break her heart after them.
There is somebody else, old man, of whom we have not heard; and I
counsel thee to try and find out him or her.  I am sadly afraid it is
_him_."

"But, Licorice, she has not seen any one.  The Lady passed her word that
not a soul should come near her."

"Pish!  Did the shiksah keep it?  Even if she meant to do--and who can
trust a Gentile?--was she there, day and night?  Did Emendant not tell
thee that he saw her at the Coronation?"

"Well, yes, he did," admitted Abraham, with evident reluctance.

"And had she Belasez there, tied to her apron-string, with a bandage
over her eyes?  Son of Ursel, wilt thou never open thine?  Who knows how
many young gallants may have chattered to her then?  `When the cat is
away--' thou knowest.  Not that the shiksah was much of a cat when she
was there, I'll be bound.  Dost thou not care if the child be stolen
from us?  And when they have stolen her heart and her soul, they may as
well take her body.  It won't make much difference then."

"Licorice--"

Belasez listened more intently than ever.  There was a world of tender
regret in Abraham's voice, and she knew that it was not for Licorice.

"Licorice,"--he said, and stopped.

"Go on," responded her mother sharply, "unless thou wert after some
foolery, as is most likely."

"Licorice, hast thou forgotten that Sabbath even, when thou broughtest
home--"

"I wish thou wouldst keep thy tongue off names.  I have as good a memory
as thou, though it is not lined like thine with asses' skin."

"And dost thou remember what thou toldest me that she said to thy
reproaches?"

"Well, what then?"

"`What then?'  O Licorice!"

"I do wish thou wouldst speak sense!--what art thou driving at?"

"Thou art hard to please, wife.  If I speak plainly thou wilt not hear
me out, and if I only hint thou chidest me for want of plainness.  Well!
if thou canst not see `what then,' never mind.  I thought those
sorrowful words of my poor child might have touched thy heart.  I can
assure thee, they did mine, when I heard of them.  They have never been
out of mine ears since."

It seemed plain to Belasez that her mother was being rebuked for want of
motherly tenderness, and, as she doubted not, towards Anegay.  This
mysterious person, then, must have been a sister of whom she had never
heard,--probably much older than herself.

"What a lot of soft down must have been used up to make thine heart!"
was the cynical reply of Licorice.

"I cannot help it, Licorice.  I have her eyes ever before me--hers, and
his.  It is of no use scolding me--I cannot help it.  And if it be as
thou thinkest, I cannot break the child's heart.  I shall not speak to
Hamon, nor the Cohen."

"Faint-hearted Gentile!" blazed forth Licorice.

"Get it over, wife," said Abraham, quietly.  "I will try to find out if
thou hast guessed rightly; though it were rather work for thee than me,
if--well, I will do my best.  But suppose I should find that she has
given her maiden heart to some Gentile,--what am I to do then?"

"Do!  What did Phinehas the son of Eleazar the priest unto Zimri and
Cozbi?  Hath not the Blessed One commanded, saying, `Thy daughter thou
shalt not give unto his son'?  What meanest thou?  Do!  Couldst thou do
too much, even if they were offered upon the altar before the God of
Sabaoth?"

"Where is it?" responded Abraham, desolately.  "But, Licorice,--_our_
daughter?"

"What dost thou mean?" said Licorice, fiercely.  "Perhaps we might shed
tears first.  But they must not pollute the sacrifice.  Do not the holy
Rabbins say that a tear dropped upon a devoted lamb washeth out all the
merit of the offering?"

"I believe they do," said Abraham; "though it is not in the Thorah.  But
I did not mean exactly that.  Dost thou not understand me?"

"I understand that thou art no true son of Abraham!" burst out his wife.
"I say she is, and she shall be!"

"Who ever heard of such reckoning in the days of the fathers?" answered
Abraham.  "Licorice, I am doubtful if we have done well in keeping back
the truth so much.  Doth not the Holy One love and require truth in all
His people?  Yet it was thy doing, not mine."

"Oh yes, thou wouldst have told her at once!" sneered Licorice.  "She
would stay with us meekly then, would she not?  Go to sleep, for mercy's
sake, I entreat thee, and hold thy tongue, before any worse mischief be
done.  My doing! yes, it is well it was.  Had I listened to thee, that
girl would have been worshipping idols at this moment."

"`Blessed is the man that trusteth in Adonai,'" softly said Abraham.
"He could have helped it, I suppose."

"Ay, and happy is that woman that hath a wise man to her husband!"
responded Licorice, irreverently.  "Go to sleep, for the sake of Jael
the wife of Heber the Kenite, or I shall get up and chop thy head off,
for thou art not a whit better than Sisera!"

Perhaps Abraham thought it the wisest plan to obey his incensed spouse,
for no word of response reached Belasez.

That damsel lay awake for a considerable time.  She soon made up her
mind to get as much as she could out of her cousin Genta.  It was
evident that a catechising ordeal awaited her, to the end of discovering
a supposed Christian lover; but feeling her conscience quite clear on
that count, Belasez was only disturbed at the possible revelation of her
change of faith.  She could, however, honestly satisfy Abraham that she
had not received baptism.  But two points puzzled and deeply interested
her.  How much had she better say about Bruno?--and, what was this
mysterious point which they were afraid she might guess--which seemed to
have some unaccountable reference to herself?  If Anegay were her
sister, as she could no longer doubt, why should her conduct in some way
reflect upon Belasez?  Suppose Anegay had married a Christian--as she
thought most likely from the allusions, and which she knew would be in
her parents' eyes disgrace of the deepest dye--or even if Anegay had
herself become a Christian, which was a shade worse still,--yet what had
that to do with Belasez, and why should it make her so anxious to go
back to the Christians?

Then, as to Bruno,--Belasez was conscious in her heart that she loved
him very dearly, though her affection was utterly unmingled with any
thoughts of matrimony.  She would have thought old Hamon as eligible for
a husband, when he patted her on the head with a patriarchal
benediction.  It was altogether a friendly and daughterly class of
feeling with which she regarded Father Bruno.  But would Abraham enter
into that?  Was it wise to tell him?

Thinking and planning, Belasez fell asleep.

The ordeal did not come off immediately.  It seemed to Belasez as if her
father would gladly have avoided it altogether; but she was tolerably
sure that her mother would not allow him much peace till it was done.

"Delecresse," she said, the first time she was alone with her brother,
"had we ever a sister?"

"Never, to my knowledge," said Delecresse, looking as if he wondered
what had put that notion into her head.

Evidently he knew nothing.

Genta, who was constantly coming in and out, for her home was in the
same short street, dropped in during the evening, and Belasez carried
her off to her own little bed-chamber, which was really a goodsized
closet, on the pretext of showing her some new embroidery.

"Genta," she said, "tell me when my sister died."

"Thy sister, Belasez?"  Genta's expression was one of most innocent
perplexity.  "Hadst thou ever a sister?"

"Had I not?"

"I never heard of one."

"Think, Genta I was she not called Anegay?"

Genta's shake of the head was decided enough to settle any question, but
Belasez fancied she caught a momentary flash in her eyes which was by no
means a negation.

But Belasez did not hear a few sentences that were uttered before Genta
left the house.

"Aunt Licorice, what has Belasez got in her head?"

"Nay, what has she, Genta?"

"I am sure some one has been telling her something.  She has asked me
to-night if she had not once a sister, and if her name were not Anegay."

The exclamation in reply was more forcible than elegant.  But that
night, as Belasez lay in bed, through half-closed eyes she saw her
mother enter and hold the lantern to her face.  I am sorry to add that
Belasez instantly counterfeited profound sleep; and Licorice retired
with apparent satisfaction.

"Husband!" she heard her mother say, a few minutes later, "either some
son of a Philistine has told that child something, or she has overheard
our words."

"What makes thee think so?"  Abraham's tone was one of great distress,
if not terror.

"She has been asking questions of Genta.  But she has got hold of the
wrong pattern--she fancies Anegay was her sister."

"Does she?" replied Abraham, in a tone of sorrowful tenderness.

"There's less harm in her thinking that, than if she knew the truth.
Genta showed great good sense: she professed to know nothing at all
about it."

"Dissimulation again, Licorice!" came, with a heavy sigh, from Abraham.

"Hold thy tongue!  Where should we be without it?"

Abraham made no answer.  But early on the following morning he summoned
Belasez to the little porch-chamber, and she went with her heart
beating.

As she suspected, the catechism was now to be gone through.  But poor
Abraham was the more timid of the two.  He was so evidently unwilling to
speak, and so regretfully tender, that Belasez's heart warmed, and she
lost all her shyness.  Of course, she told him more than she otherwise
would have done.

Belasez denied the existence of any Christian lover, or indeed of any
lover at all, with such clear, honest eyes, that Abraham could not but
believe her.  But, he urged, had she ever seen any man in the Castle, to
speak to him?

"Yes," said Belasez frankly.  "Not while the Lady was there.  But during
her absence, Sir Richard de Clare had been three times in the bower, and
the priests had given lessons to the damsels in the ante-chamber."

"Did any of these ever speak to thee?"

"Sir Richard never spoke to me but twice, further than to say `Good
morrow.'  Once he admired a pattern I was working, and once he asked me,
when I came in from the leads, if it were raining."

"Didst thou care for him, my daughter?"

"Not in the least," said Belasez, "nor he for me.  I rather think Damsel
Margaret was his attraction."  Her father seemed satisfied on that
point.  "And these priests?  How many were there?"  Belasez told him.
"Master Aristoteles the physician, and Father Nicholas, and Father
Warner, chaplains of my Lord the Earl; and the chaplain of the Lady."

She hardly knew what instinct made her unwilling to utter Father Bruno's
name; and, most unintentionally, she blushed.

"Oh!" said Abraham to himself, "the Lady's chaplain is the dangerous
person.--Are they old men, my child?"

"None of them is either very old or very young, Father."

"Describe them to me, I pray thee."

"Master Aristoteles I cannot describe, for I have only heard his voice.
Father Nicholas is about fifty, I should think: a kindly sort of man,
but immersed in his books, and caring for little beside.  Father Warner
is not pleasant; all the girls were very much afraid of him."

"And the chaplain of the Lady?"

"He is forty or more, I should suppose: tall and slender, eyes and hair
dark; a very pleasant man to speak with."

"I am afraid so!" was Abraham's internal comment.--"And his name,
daughter?"

"Father Bruno."

"_What_?"  Abraham had risen, with outspread hands, as though he would
fain push away some unwelcome and horrible thing.

Belasez repeated the name.

"Bruno!--de Malpas?"

"I never heard of any name but Bruno."

"Has he talked with thee?"  Abraham's whole manner showed agitation.

"Much."

"Upon what subjects?"

Belasez would gladly have avoided that question.

"Different subjects," she said, evasively.

"Tell me what he said when he first met thee."

"He seemed much distressed, I knew not at what, and murmured that my
face painfully reminded him of somebody."

"Ah!--Belasez, didst thou know whom?"

"Not till I came home," she said in a low tone.

"_Ay de mi_!  What hast thou heard since thy coming home?"

Belasez resolved to speak the truth.  She had been struck by her
father's hints that some terrible mischief had come from not speaking
it; and she thought that perhaps open confession on her part might lead
to confidence on his.

"I overheard you and my mother talking at night," she said.  "I gathered
that the somebody whom I was like was my sister, and that her name was
Anegay; and I thought she had either become a Christian, or had wedded a
Christian.  Father, may I know?"

"My little Belasez," he said, with deep feeling, "thou knowest all but
the one thing thou must not know.  There was one called Anegay.  But she
was not thy sister.  Let the rest be silence to thee."

It seemed to cost Abraham immense pain to say even so much as this.  He
sat quiet for a moment, his face working pitifully.

"Little Belasez," he said again, "didst thou like that man?"

"I think I loved him," was her soft answer.

Abraham's gesture, which she thought indicated despair and anguish,
roused her to explain.

"Father," she said hastily, "I do not mean anything wrong or foolish.  I
loved Father Bruno with a deep, reverential love--such as I give you."

"Such as thou givest me--O Belasez!"

Belasez thought he was hurt by her comparison of her love for him to
that of her love for a mere stranger.

"Father, how shall I explain?  I meant--"

"My poor child, I need no explanation.  Thou hast been more righteous
than we.  Belasez, the truth is hidden from thee because thou art too
near it to behold it.  My poor, poor child!"  And suddenly rising,
Abraham lifted up his arms in the attitude of prayer.  "O Thou that
doest wonders, Thou hast made the wrath of man to praise Thee.  How
unsearchable are Thy judgments, and Thy ways past finding out!"  Then he
laid his hand upon Belasez's head.

"It is Adonai," he said.  "Let Him do what seemeth Him good.  He said
unto Shimei, Curse David.  Methinks He hath said to thee, Love Bruno.
The Holy One forbid that I should grudge the love of--of our child, to
the desolate heart which we made desolate.  Adonai knows, and He only,
whether we did good or bad.  Pray to Him, my Belasez, to forgive that
one among us who truly needs His forgiveness!"

And Abraham hurried from the room, as if he were afraid to trust
himself, lest if he stayed he should say something which he might
afterwards regret bitterly.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  Priest.  All Jews named Cohen are sons of Aaron.



CHAPTER NINE.

PAYING THE BILL.

  "'Tis hard when young heart, singing songs of to-morrow,
  Is suddenly met by the old hag, Sorrow."

  _Leigh Hunt_.

Father Bruno was walking slowly, with his hands one in the other behind
him, about a mile from Bury Castle.  It was a lovely morning in April,
and, though alone, he had no fear of highwaymen; for he would have been
a bold sinner indeed who, in 1236, meddled with a priest for his harm.
An absent-minded man was Father Bruno, at all times when he was free to
indulge in meditation.  For to him:--

  "The future was all dark,
  And the past a troubled sea,
  And Memory sat in his heart
  Wailing where Hope should be."

He was given to murmuring his thoughts half aloud when in solitude; and
he was doing it now.  They oscillated from one to the other of two
subjects, closely associated in his mind.  One was Belasez: the other
was a memory of his sorrowful past, a fair girl-face, the likeness to
which had struck him so distressingly in hers, and which would never
fade from his memory "till God's love set her at his side again."

"What will become of the maiden?" he whispered to himself.  "So like, so
like!--just what my Beatrice might have been, if--nay, Thou art wise, O
Lord!  It is I who am blind and ignorant.  Ay, and just the same age!
She must be the infant of whom Licorice spoke: she was then in the
cradle, I remember.  She said that if Beatrice had lived, they might
have been like twin sisters.  Well, well!  Ay, and it is well.  For
Anegay has found her in Heaven, safe from sin and sorrow, from tempest
and temptation, with Christ for evermore.

"`_O mea, spes mea, O Syon aurea, ut clarior oro_!'

"And what does it matter for me, during these few and evil days that are
left of this lower life?  True, the wilderness is painful: but it will
be over soon.  True, my spirit is worn and weary: but the rest of the
New Jerusalem will soon restore me.  True, I am weak, poor, blind,
ignorant, lonely, sorrowful: but my Lord is strength, wealth, light,
wisdom, love, and joyfulness.  Never canst thou be loveless, Bruno de
Malpas, while the deathless love of Christ endureth; never canst thou be
lonely and forlorn, whilst thou hast His company who is the sunlight of
Heaven.  Perhaps it would not have been good for me, had my beloved
stayed with me.  Nay, since He saw it good, it can be no perhaps, but a
certainty.  I suppose I should have valued Him less, had my jewel-casket
remained full.  Ay, Thou hast done well, my Lord!  Pardon Thy servant if
at times the journey grows very weary to his weak human feet, and he
longs for a draught of the sweet waters of earthly love which Thou hast
permitted to dry up.  Grant him fresh draughts of that Living Water
whereof he that drinketh shall thirst no more.  Hold Thou me up, and I
shall be safe!

"Was I right in refusing to baptise the maiden?  Verily, it would have
been rich revenge on Licorice.  I had no right, as I told her, to suffer
the innocence of her chrism to be soiled with the evil passions which
were sin in me.  Yet had I any right to deny her the grace of holy
baptism, because I was not free from evil passions?  Oh, how hard it is
to find the straight road!

"Poor little maiden!  What will become of her now?  I fear the
impressions that have been made on her will soon be stifled in the
poisonous atmosphere into which she is gone.  And I cannot bear to think
of her as a lost soul, with that face so like my Anegay, and that
voice--

"Now, shame upon thee, Bruno de Malpas!  Is Belasez more to thee than to
Him that died for her?  Canst thou not trust Him who giveth unto His
sheep eternal life, not to allow this white lamb to be plucked out of
His hand?  O Lord, increase my faith!--for it is very low.  I am one of
the very weakest of Thy disciples.  Yet I am Thine.  Lord, Thou knowest
all things; Thou knowest that I love Thee!"

During the time occupied by these reflections, Bruno had been
instinctively approaching the Castle, and he looked up suddenly as he
was conscious of a clang of arms and a confused medley of voices, not in
very peaceful tones, breaking in upon his meditations.  He now perceived
that the drawbridge was thronged with armed men, the portcullis drawn
up, and the courtyard beyond full of soldiers in mail.

"What is the matter, friend William?" asked Bruno of the porter at the
outer gate.

"Nay, the saints wot, good Father, not I: but of this am I very sure,
that some mischance is come to my Lord.  You were a wise man if you kept
away."

"Not so," was Bruno's answer, as he passed on: "it is the hireling, not
the shepherd, that fleeth from the wolf, and leaveth the sheep to be
scattered."

He made his way easily into the hall, for no one thought of staying a
priest.  The lower end was thronged with soldiers.  On the dais stood
Sir Piers de Rievaulx and half-a-dozen more, confronting Earl Hubert,
who wore an expression of baffled amazement.  Just behind him stood the
Countess, evidently possessed by fear and anguish; Sir John de Burgh,
with his hand upon his sword; Doucebelle, very white and frightened; and
furthest in the background, Sir Richard de Clare, who clasped in his
arms the fainting form of Margaret, and bent his head over her with a
look of agonised tenderness.

"Words are fine things, my Lord of Kent," was the first sentence
distinguishable to Father Bruno, and the spokesman was Sir Piers.  "But
I beg you to remember that it is of no earthly use talking to _me_ in
this strain.  If you can succeed in convincing my Lord the King that you
had no hand in this business, well!"--and Sir Piers' shoulders went up
towards his ears, in a manner which indicated that result to be far from
what he expected.  "But those two young fools don't attempt to deny it,
and their faces would give them the lie if they did.  As for my Lady--"

The Countess sprang forward and threw herself on her knees, clinging to
the arm of her husband, while she passionately addressed herself to
both.

"Sir Piers, on my life and honour, my Lord knew nothing of this!  It was
done while he was away with the Lord King at Merton.--It was my doing,
my Lord, mine!  And it is true, what Sir Piers tells you.  My daughter
has gone too far with Sir Richard de Clare, ever to be married to
another."  [Note 1.]

Sir Piers stood listening with a rather amused set of the lips, as if he
thought the scene very effective.  To him, the human agony before his
eyes was no more than a play enacted for his entertainment.  Of course
it was in the way of business; but Sir Piers' principle was to get as
much diversion out of his business as he could.

"Very good indeed, Lady," said that worthy Minister.  "Your confession
may spare you some annoyance.  But as to your Lord, it will do nothing.
You hardly expect us to swallow this pretty little fiction, I suppose?
If you do, I beg you will undeceive yourself.--Officers, do your duty."
The officers had evidently received previous instructions, for they at
once laid their hands on the shoulders of Earl Hubert and Sir Richard.
The half-insensible Margaret was roused into life by the attempt to take
her bridegroom from her.  With a cry that might have touched any heart
but that of Sir Piers de Rievaulx, she flung her arms around him and
held him close.

Apparently the officers were touched, for they stopped and looked at
their chief for further orders.

"Coward loons as ye are!--are ye frightened of a girl?" said Sir Piers
with a harsh laugh, and he came forward himself.  "Lady Margaret, there
is no need to injure you unless you choose.  Please yourself.  I am
going to arrest this young knight."

But for one second, Sir Piers waited himself.  Those around mistook it
for that knightly courtesy of which there was none in him.  They did not
know that suddenly, to him, out of Margaret's pleading eyes looked the
eyes of the dead sister, Serena de Rievaulx, and it seemed to him as
though soft child-fingers held him off for an instant.  He had never
loved any mortal thing but that dead child.

With one passionate, pleading gaze at Sir Piers, Margaret laid her head
on the breast of Sir Richard, and sobbed as though her heart were
breaking.

"My Lord, my Lord!" came, painfully mixed with long-drawn sobs, from the
lips of the young bride.  "My own, own Richard!  And only two months
since we were married!--Have you the heart to part us?" she cried,
suddenly turning to Sir Piers.  "Did you never love any one?"

"Never, Madam."  For once in his life, Sir Piers spoke truth, Never--
except Serena: and not much then.

"Brute!"  And with this calumnious epithet--for brutes can love dearly--
Margaret resumed her former attitude.

"Lady Margaret, I must trouble you," said Sir Piers, in tones of
hardness veneered with civility.

"My darling, you must let me go," interposed the young Earl of
Gloucester, who seemed scarcely less miserable than his bride.

"Magot, my child, we may not stay justice," said the distressed tones of
her father.

Yet she held tight until Sir Piers tore her away.

"Look to the damsel," he condescended to say, with a glance at
Doucebelle and Bruno.  "Oh, ha!--where is the priest that blessed this
wedding?  I must have him."

"There was no priest," sobbed the Countess, lifting her head from her
husband's arm, where she had let it sink: "it was _per verba
depresenti_."

"That we will see," was the cool response of Sir Piers.  "Take all the
priests, Sir Drew.--Now, my Lady!"

"Fare thee well, my jewel," said Earl Hubert, kissing the brow of the
Countess.  "Poor little Magot!--farewell, too."

"Sir Hubert, my Lord, forgive me!  I meant no ill."

"Forgive thee?" said the Earl, with a smile, and again kissing his
wife's brow.  "I could not do otherwise, my Margaret.--Now, Sir Piers,
we are your prisoners."

"These little amenities being disposed of," sneered Sir Piers.  "I
suppose women must cry over something:--kind, I should think, to give
them something to cry about.--March out the prisoners."

Father Nicholas had been discovered in his study, engaged in the deepest
meditation on a grammatical crux; and had received the news of his
arrest with a blank horror and amazement very laughable in the eyes of
Sir Piers.  Master Aristoteles was pounding rhubarb with his sleeves
turned up, and required some convincing that he was not wanted
professionally.  Father Warner was no where to be found.  The three
priests were spared fetters in consideration of their sacred character:
both the Earls were heavily ironed.  And so the armed band, with their
prisoners, marched away from the Castle.

The feelings of the prisoners were diverse.  Father Nicholas was simply
astonished beyond any power of words to convey.  Master Aristoteles was
convinced that the recent physical disturbances in the atmosphere were
more than enough to account for the whole affair.  Earl Hubert felt sure
that his old enemy, the Bishop of Winchester, was at the bottom of it.
Earl Richard was disposed to think the same Father Bruno alone looked
upwards, and saw God.

But assuredly no one of them saw the moving cause in that tall, stern,
silent Jewish youth, and the last idea that ever entered the mind of
Richard de Clare was to associate this great grief of his life with the
boyish trick he had played on Delecresse two years before.

For the great grief of Richard's life this sorrow was.  Through the
six-and-twenty years which remained of his mortal span, he never forgot
it, and he never forgave it.

It proved the easiest thing in the world to convince King Henry that he
had not intended Richard to marry Margaret.  Had his dearly-beloved
uncle, the Bishop of Valentia, held up before him a black cloth, and
said, "This is white," His Majesty would merely have wondered what could
be the matter with his eyes.

The next point was to persuade that royal and most deceivable individual
that he had entertained an earnest desire to see Richard married to a
Princess of Savoy, a cousin of the Queen.  This, also, was not
difficult.  The third lesson instilled into him was that, Richard having
thought proper to render this impossible by choosing for himself, he,
King Henry, was a cruelly-injured and unpardonably insulted man.  His
Majesty swallowed them all as glibly as possible.  The metal being thus
fused to the proper state, the prisoners were brought before their
affronted Sovereign in person.

They were tried in inverse order, according to importance.  Father Bruno
could prove, without much difficulty, that the obnoxious marriage had
taken place, on the showing of the prosecution itself, before he had
entered the household.  His penalty was the light one of discharge from
the Countess's service.  That he deserved no penalty at all was not
taken into consideration.  The Crown could not so far err as to bring a
charge against an entirely innocent man.  The verdict, therefore, in
Father Bruno's case resembled that of the famous jury who returned as
theirs, "Not Guilty, but we hope he won't do it again."

Master Aristoteles was next placed in the dock, and had the honour of
amusing the Court.  His asseverations of innocent ignorance were so
mixed up with dissertations on the virtues of savin and betony, and
lamenting references to the last eclipse which might have warned him of
what was coming on him, that the Court condescended to relax into a
smile, and let the simple man go with the light sentence of six months'
imprisonment.  At a subsequent period in his life, Master Aristoteles
was wont to say that this sentence was the best thing that ever happened
to him, since the enforced meditation and idleness had enabled him to
think out his grand discovery that the dust which gathered on beams of
chestnut wood was an infallible specific for fever.  He had since
treated three fever patients in this manner, and not one of them had
died.  Whether the patients would have recovered without the dust, and
with being so much let alone, Master Aristoteles did not concern
himself.

Next came Father Nicholas.  A light sentence also sufficed for him, not
on account of his innocence, but because his friend the Abbot of Ham was
a friend of the Bishop of Winchester.

Earl Hubert of Kent was then tried.  The animus of his accusers was
plainly shown, for they brought up again all the old hackneyed charges
on account of which he had been pardoned years before--for some of them
more than once.  The affront offered to the King by the Earl's marriage
with Margaret of Scotland, the fact that she and his third wife were
within the forbidden degrees, and that no dispensation had been
obtained; these were renewed, with all the other disproved and spiteful
accusations of old time.  But the head and front of the offending, in
this instance, was of course the marriage of his daughter.  It did not
make much difference that Hubert calmly swore that he had never known of
the marriage, either before or after, except what he had learned from
the simple statement of the Countess his wife, to the effect that it had
been contracted at Bury Saint Edmund's, during his absence at Merton.
The fervent intercession of Hubert's friends, moved by the passionate
entreaties of the Countess, did not make much difference either; but
what did make a good deal was that the Earl (who knew his royal master)
offered a heavy golden bribe for pardon of the crime he had not
committed.  King Henry thereupon condescended to announce that in
consideration of the effect produced upon his compassionate heart by the
piteous intercession of the prisoner's friends,--

  "His fury should abate, and he
  The crowns would take."

Earl Hubert therefore received a most gracious pardon, and was permitted
to return (minus the money) to the bosom of his distracted family.

But the heaviest vengeance fell on the young head of Richard de Clare,
and through him on the fair girl with the cedar hair, whose worst crime
was that she had loved him.  It was not vengeance that could be weighed
like Hubert's coins, or told on the clock like the imprisonment of his
physician.  It was counted out, throb by throb, in the agony of two
human hearts, one fiercely stabbed and artificially healed, and the
other left to bleed to death like a wounded doe.

The King's first step was to procure a solemn Papal sentence of divorce
between Richard and Margaret.  Their consent, of course, was neither
asked nor thought needful.  His Majesty's advisers allowed him--and
Richard--a little rest then, before they thought it necessary to do any
thing more.

The result of the trial was to leave Father Bruno homeless.  He returned
to his monastery at Lincoln, and sought the leave of his Superior to be
transferred to the Convent of the Order at Norwich.  His heart still
yearned over Belasez, with a tenderness which was half of Heaven and
half of earth.  Yet he knew that in all probability he would never find
it possible to cross her path.  Well! let him do what he could, and
leave the rest with God.  If He meant them to meet, meet they must,
though Satan and all his angels combined to bar the way.

"Wife!"

"May thy beard be shaven!  I was just dropping off.  Well?"

It had taken Abraham a long while to summon up his courage to make what
he felt would be to Licorice an unwelcome communication.  He was rather
dismayed to find it so badly received at the first step.

"Do go on, thou weariest of old jackdaws!  I'm half asleep."

"I have spoken to the child, Licorice."

"As if thou couldst not have said that half an hour ago!  Well, how do
matters stand?"

"There is one person in particular whom she is sorry to leave."

"Of course there is!  I saw that as plain as the barber's pole across
the street.  Didn't I tell thee so?  Is it some young Christian gallant,
and who is he?  Blessed be the memory of Abraham our father!--why did we
ever let that girl go to Bury?"

"It is not as thou art fearing, wife.  But--it is worse."

"Worse!"  Licorice seemed wide awake enough now.  "Why, what could there
be worse, unless she had married a Christian, or had abjured her faith?"

"Wife, this is worse.  She has seen--him."

"De Malpas?"  The name was almost hissed from the lips of Licorice.

"The same.  It was to be, Licorice.  Adonai knows why!  But it is
evident they were fated to meet."

"What did the viper tell her?"

"I do not gather that he told her any thing, except that she brought a
face to his memory that he had known of old.  She fancies--and so of
course does he--that it was her sister."

A low, peculiar laugh from her mother made Belasez's blood curdle as she
lay listening.  There seemed so much more of the fiend in it than the
angel.

"What an ass he must be, never to guess the truth!"

"She wants to know the truth, wife.  She asked me if she might not."

"Thou let it alone.  I'll cook up a nice little story, that will set her
mind at rest."

"O Licorice!--more deception yet?"

"Deception!  Why, wouldst thou tell her the truth?  Just go to her now,
and wake her, and let her know that she is--"

Belasez strained her ears to their utmost, but the words which followed
could not be heard from her mother's dropped tones.

"What would follow--eh?" demanded Licorice, raising her voice again.

"Adonai knows!" said Abraham, sadly.  "But I suppose we could not keep
her long."

"I should think not!  Thou canst go and tell the Mayor, and see what he
and his catch-polls will say.  Wouldn't there be a pretty ferment?  Old
man, it would cost thee thy life, and mine also.  Give over talking
about lies as if thou wert one of the cherubim (I'll let thee know when
I think there's any danger of it), and show a little spice of prudence,
like a craftsman of middle earth as thou art.  More deception!  Of
course there is more deception.  A man had better keep off a slide to
begin with, it he does not want to be carried down it."

"The child fancies, Licorice, that Anegay was her sister, and that she
either became a Christian or married one.  She has no idea of any thing
more."

"Who told her Anegay's name?"

"I cannot imagine.  It might be Bruno."

"We have always been so careful to keep it from her hearing."

There was a pause.

"Didst thou find the Christian dog had tampered with her faith?"

"I don't know, Licorice.  I could not get that out of her."

"Then he has, no doubt.  I'll get it out of her."

Belasez trembled at the threat.

"Any thing more, old man?  If not, I'll go to sleep again."

"Licorice," said Abraham in a low voice, "the child said she loved him--
as she loves me."

"May he be buried in a dunghill!  What witchcraft has he used to them
both?"

"It touched me so, wife, I could hardly speak to her.  She did not know
why."

"Abraham, do give over thy sentimental stuff!  Nothing ever touches me!"

"I doubt if it do," was Abraham's dry answer.

"Such a rabbit as thou art!--as frightened as a hare, and as soft as a
bag of duck's down.  I'm going to sleep."

And Belasez heard no more.  She woke, however, the next morning, with
that uncomfortable conviction of something disagreeable about to happen,
with which all human beings are more or less familiar.  It gradually
dawned upon her that Licorice was going to "get it out of her," and was
likewise about to devise a false tale for her especial benefit.  She had
not heard two sentences which passed between her parents before she
woke, or she might have been still more on her guard.

"Licorice, thou must take care what thou sayest to that child.  I told
her that Anegay was not her sister."

"Just what might have been expected of thee, my paragon of wisdom!
Well, never mind.  I'll tell her she was her aunt.  That will do as
well."

When the daily cleaning, dusting, cooking, and baking were duly
completed, Licorice made Belasez's heart flutter by a command to attend
her in the little porch-chamber.

"Belasez," she began, in tones so amiable that Belasez would instantly
have suspected a trap, had she overheard nothing,--for Licorice's
character was well known to her--"Belasez, I hear from thy father that
thou hast heard some foolish gossip touching one Anegay, that was a
kinswoman of thine, and thou art desirous of knowing the truth.  Thou
shalt know it now.  Indeed, there was no reason to hide it from thee
further than this, that the tale being a painful one, thy father and I
have not cared to talk about it.  This Anegay was the sister of Abraham
thy father, and therefore thine aunt."

Belasez, who had been imagining that Anegay might have been her father's
sister, at once mentally decided that she was not.  She had noticed that
Abraham's references to the dead girl were made with far more indication
of love and regret than those of Licorice: and she had fancied that this
might be due to the existence of relationship on his part and not on
hers.  She now concluded that it was simply a question of character.
But who Anegay was, was a point left as much in the dark as ever.

"She was a great friend of mine, daughter, and I loved her very dearly,"
said Licorice, applying one hand to her perfectly dry eyes--a proceeding
which imparted to Belasez, who knew that such terms from her were
generally to be interpreted by the rule of contrary, a strong impression
that she had hated her.  "And at that time thy father dwelt at Lincoln--
it was before we were married, thou knowest--and Anegay, being an only
and motherless daughter, used to spend much of her time with me.  I
cannot quite tell thee how, for indeed it was a puzzle to myself, but
Anegay became acquainted with a Christian maiden whose name was
Beatrice--"

A peculiar twinkle in the eyes of Licorice caused Belasez to feel
especially doubtful of the truth of this part of the story.

"And who had a brother," pursued Licorice, "a young Christian squire,
but as thou shalt hear, a most wicked and artful man."

Belasez at once set down the unknown squire as a model of all the
cardinal virtues.

"Thou art well aware, Belasez, my child, that these idolaters practise
the Black Art, and are versed in spells which they can cast over all
unfortunate persons who are so luckless as to come within their
influence."

There had been a time when Belasez believed this, and many more charges
brought against the Christians, just as they in their turn believed
similar calumnies against the Jews.  But the months spent at Bury
Castle, unconsciously to herself till it was done, had shaken and
uprooted many prejudices, leaving her with the simple conviction that
Jews and Christians were all fallible human beings, very much of the
same stamp, some better than others, but good and bad to be found in
both camps.  Licorice, however, was by no means the person to whom she
chose to impart such impressions.  There had never been any confidence
or communion of spirit between them.  In fact, they were cast in such
different moulds that it was hardly possible there should be any.
Licorice was a sweeping and cooking machine, whose intellect was wholly
uncultivated, and whose imagination all ran into cunning and deceit.
Belasez was an article of much finer quality, both mentally and morally.
The only person in her own family with whom she could exchange thought
or feeling was Abraham; and he was not her equal, though he came the
nearest to it.

It had often distressed Belasez that her mother and she seemed to have
so little in common.  Many times she had tried hard to scold herself
into more love for Licorice, and had found the process a sheer
impossibility.  She had now given it up with a sorrowful recognition
that it was not to be done, but a firm conviction that it was her own
fault, and that she ought to be very penitent for such hardness of
heart.

"It seems to me," continued Licorice, "that this bad young man, whose
name was De Malpas, must have cast a spell on our poor, unhappy Anegay.
For how else could a daughter of Israel come to love so vile an insect
as one of the accursed Goyim?

"For she did love him, Belasez; and a bitter grief and disgrace it was
to all her friends.  Of course I need not say that the idea of a
marriage between them was an odious impossibility.  The only resource
was to take Anegay away from Lincoln, where she would learn to forget
all about the creeping creatures, and return to her duty as a servant of
the Living and Eternal One.  It was at that time that I and thy father
were wedded; and we then came to live in Norwich, bringing Anegay with
us."

Licorice paused, as if her tale were finished.  It sounded specious: but
how much of it was true?  "And did she forget him, Mother?"

"Of course she did, Belasez.  It was her duty."  Belasez privately
thought that people did not always do their duty, and that such a duty
as this would be extremely hard to do.

"Was she ever married, Mother, if you please?"

"She married a young Jew, my dear, named Aaron the son of Leo, and died
soon after the birth of her first child," said Licorice, glibly.  "And
was she really happy, Mother?"

"Happy!  Of course she was.  She had no business to be any thing else."

Belasez was silent, but not in the least convinced.

"Thou seest now, my Belasez, why I was so much afraid of thy visits to
Bury.  I well know thou art a discreet maiden, and entirely to be
trusted so far as thine ability goes: but what can such qualities avail
thee against magic?  I have heard of a grand-aunt of mine, whom a
Christian by this means glued to the settle, and for three years she
could not rise from it, until the wicked spell was dissolved.  I do not
mistrust thee, good daughter: I do but warn thee."

And Licorice rose with a manner which indicated the termination of the
interview, apparently thinking it better to reserve the religious
question for another time.

"May I ask one other question, Mother?--what became of the maiden
Beatrice and her brother?"

Licorice's eyes twinkled again.  Belasez listened for the answer on the
principle of the Irishman who looked at the guide-post to see where the
road did not lead.

"The squire was killed fighting the Saracens, I believe.  I do not know
what became of the maiden."

Licorice disappeared.

"The squire was not killed, I am sure," said Belasez to herself.  "It is
Father Bruno."

Left alone, Belasez reviewed her very doubtful information.  Anegay was
not her sister, and probably not her aunt.  That she had loved Bruno was
sure to be true; and that she had been forcibly separated from him was
only too likely.  But her subsequent marriage to Aaron, and the very
existence of Beatrice, were in Belasez's eyes purely fictitious details,
introduced to make the events dovetail nicely.  Why she doubted the
latter point she could hardly have told.  It was really due to that
gleam in her mother's eyes, which she invariably put on when she was
launching out rather more boldly than usual into the sea of fiction.
Yet there seemed no reason for the invention of Beatrice, if she were
not a real person.

But was the story which Belasez had heard sufficient to explain all the
allusions which she had overheard?  She went over them, one by one, as
they recurred to her memory, and decided that it was.  She had heard
nothing from her parents, nothing from Bruno, which contradicted it in
the least.  Why, then, this uncomfortable, instinctive feeling that
something was left behind which had not been told her?

Belasez was lying awake in bed when she reached that point: and a moment
after, she sprang to a sitting posture.

Yes, there was something behind!

What had she heard that, if it were known, would cost Abraham and
Licorice their lives?  What had she heard which explained those
mysterious allusions to herself as personally concerned in the story?
Why would she leave them instantly if she knew all?  What was that one
point which Abraham had distinctly told her she must not know,--which
Licorice expressed such anxiety that she should not even guess?

There was not much sleep for Belasez that night.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  The confession of the Countess is historical.  She took the
whole blame upon herself.



CHAPTER TEN.

TRUTH TOLD AT LAST.

  "Guardami ben'!  Ben' son', ben' son' Beatrice."

  _Dante_.

"Well, now, this is provoking!"

"What is the matter, wife?"  And Abraham looked up from a bale of silk
which he was packing.

"Why, here has Genta been and taken the fever; and there is not a soul
but me to go and nurse her."

"There is Esterote, her brother's wife."

"There isn't!  Esterote has her baby to look to.  Dost thou expect her
to carry infection to him?"

"What is to be done?" demanded Abraham, blankly.  "Could not Pucella be
had, or old Cuntessa?"

"Old Cuntessa is engaged as nurse for Rosia the wife of Bonamy the rich
usurer, and Pucella would be no good,--she's as frightened of the fever
as a chicken, and she has never had it."

"Well, thou hast had it."

"I?  Oh, I'm not frightened a bit--not of that.  I am tremendously
afraid of thee."

"Of me?  I shall not hinder thee, Licorice.  I do not think it likely
thou wouldst take it."

"_Ay de mi_, canst thou not understand?  I might as well leave a thief
to take care of my gold carcanet as leave thee alone with Belasez.  I
shall come back to find the child gone off with some vile dog of a
Christian, and thee tearing thy garments, like a blind, blundering bat
as thou art."

"Bats don't tear their garments, wife."

"They run their heads upon every stone they come across.  And so dost
thou."

"Wife, dost thou not think we might speak out honestly like true men,
and trust the All-Merciful with the child's future?"

"Well, if ever I did see a lame, wall-eyed, broken-kneed old pack-ass,
he was called Abraham the son of Ursel!"

And Licorice stood with uplifted hands, gazing on her lord and master in
an attitude of pitying astonishment.

"I do believe, thou moon-cast shadow of a man, if Bruno de Malpas were
to walk in and ask for her, thou wouldst just say, `Here she is, O my
Lord: do what thou wilt with thy slave.'"

"I think, Licorice, it would break my heart.  But we have let him break
his for eighteen years.  And if it came to breaking hers--What wicked
thing did he do, wife, that we should have used him thus?"

"What! canst thou ask me?  Did he not presume to lay unclean hands on a
daughter of Israel, of whom saith the Holy One, `Ye shall not give her
unto the heathen'?"

"I do not think De Malpas was a heathen."

"Hast thou been to the creeping thing up yonder and begged to be
baptised to-morrow?"

This was a complimentary allusion to that Right Reverend person, the
Bishop of Norwich.

"Nay, Licorice, I am as true to the faith as thou."

"_Ay de mi_!  I must have put on my gown wrong side out, to make thee
say so."  And Licorice pretended to make a close examination of her
skirt, as if to discover whether this was the case.

"Licorice, is it not written, `Cursed be their wrath, for it was cruel?'
Thine was, wife."

"Whatever has come to thy conscience?  It quietly went to sleep for
eighteen years; and now, all at once, it comes alive and awake!"

Abraham winced, as though he felt the taunt true.

"`Better late than never,' wife."

"That is a Christian saying."

"May be.  It is true."

"Well!"  And Licorice's hands were thrust out from her, as if she were
casting off drops of water.  "I've done my best.  I shall let it alone
now.  Genta must be nursed: and I cannot bring infection home.  And
after all, the girl is thine, not mine.  Thou must take thine own way.
But I shall bid her good-bye for ever: for I have no hope of seeing her
again."

Abraham made no answer, unless his troubled eyes and quivering lips did
so for him.  But the night closed in upon a very quiet chamber, owing to
the absence of Licorice.  Delecresse sat studying, with a book open
before him: Belasez was busied with embroidery.  Abraham was idle, so
far as his hands were concerned; but any one who had studied him for a
minute would have seen that his thoughts were very active, and by no
means pleasant.

Ten calm days passed over, and nothing happened.  They heard, through
neighbours, that Genta was going through all the phases of a tedious
illness, and that Licorice was a most attentive and valuable nurse.

At the end of those ten days, Delecresse came in with an order for some
of the exquisite broidery which only Belasez could execute.  It was
wanted for the rich usurer's wife, Rosia: and she wished Belasez to come
to her with specimens of various patterns, so that she might select the
one she preferred.

A walk through the city was an agreeable and unusual break in the
monotony of existence; and Rosia's house was quite at the other end of
the Jews' quarter.  Belasez prepared to go out with much alacrity.  Her
father escorted her himself, leaving Delecresse to mind the shop.

The embroidery was exhibited, the pattern chosen, and they were nearly
half-way at home, when they were overtaken by a sudden hailstorm, and
took refuge in the lych-gate of a church.  It was growing dusk, and they
had not perceived the presence of a third person,--like themselves, a
refugee from the storm.

"This is heavy!" said Abraham, as the hailstones came pouring and
dancing down.

"I am afraid we shall not get home till late," was the response of his
daughter.

"No, not till late," said Abraham, absently.

"Belasez!" came softly from behind her.

She turned round quickly, her hands held out in greeting, her eyes
sparkling, delight written on every feature of her face.

"Father Bruno!  I never knew you were in Norwich."

"I have not been here long, my child.  I wondered if we should ever
meet."

Ah, little idea had Belasez how that meeting had been imagined, longed
for, prayed for, through all those weary weeks.  She glanced at her
father, suddenly remembering that her warm welcome to the Christian
priest was not likely to be much approved by him.  Bruno's eyes followed
hers.

"Abraham!" he said, in tones which sounded like a mixture of friendship
and deprecation.

Abraham had bent down as though he were cowering from an expected blow.
Now he lifted himself up, and held out his hand.

"Bruno de Malpas, thou art welcome, if God hath sent thee."

"God sends all events," answered the priest, accepting the offered hand.

"Ay, I am trying to learn that," replied Abraham, in a voice of great
pain.  "For at times He sends that which breaks the heart."

"That He may heal it, my father."

The title, from Bruno's lips, surprised and puzzled Belasez.

"It may be so," said Abraham in a rather hopeless tone.  "`It is Adonai;
let Him do what seemeth Him good.'  So thou hast made friends with--my
Belasez."

"I did not know she was thine when I made friends with her," said Bruno,
with that quiet smile of his which had always seemed to Belasez at once
so sweet and so sad.

"`Did not know'?  No, I suppose not.  Ah, yes, yes!  `Did not know'!"

"Does this child know my history?" was Bruno's next question.

"She knows," said Abraham in a troubled voice, "nearly as much as thou
knowest."

"Then she knows all?"

"Nay, she knows nothing."

"You speak in riddles, my father."

"My son, I am about to do that which will break my heart.  Nay,--God is
about to do it.  Let me put it thus, or I shall not know how to bear
it."

"I have no wish nor intention to trouble you, my father," said Bruno
hastily.  "If I might, now and then, see this child,--to tell truth, it
would be a great pleasure and solace to me: for I have learned to love
her,--just the years of my Beatrice, just what Beatrice might have grown
to be.  Yet--if I speak I must speak honestly--give me leave to see
Belasez, only on the understanding that I may speak to her of Christ.
She is dear as any thing in this dreary world, but He is dearer than the
world and all that is in it.  If I may not do this, let me say farewell,
and see her no more."

"Thou hast spoken to her--of the Nazarene?" asked Abraham in a low tone.

"I have," was Bruno's frank reply.

"Thou hast taught her the Christian faith?"

"So far as I could do it."

Belasez stood trembling.  Yet Abraham did not seem angry.

"Thou hast baptised her, perhaps?"

"No.  That I have not."

"Not?--why not?"

"She was fit for it in my eyes; and--may I say it, Belasez?--she was
willing.  But my hands were not clean enough.  I felt that I could not
repress a sensation of triumphing over Licorice, if I baptised her
daughter.  May the Lord forgive me if I erred, but I did not dare to do
it."

"O my son, my son!" broke from Abraham.  "Thou hast been more righteous
than I.  Come home with me, and tell the story to Belasez thyself; and
then--Adonai, Thou knowest.  Help me to do Thy will!"

Bruno was evidently much astonished, and not a little perplexed at
Abraham's speech; but he followed him quietly.  The storm was over now,
and they gained home and the chamber over the porch without coming in
contact with Delecresse.  Abraham left Bruno there, while he desired
Belasez to take off her wet things and rejoin them.  Meantime he changed
his coat, and carried up wine and cake to his guest.  But when Belasez
reappeared, Abraham drew the bolt, and closed the inner baize door which
shut out all sound.

"Now, Bruno de Malpas," he said, "tell thy story."

And sitting down at the table, he laid his arms on it, and hid his face
upon it.

"But, my father, dost thou wish _her_ to hear it?"

"The Blessed One does, I believe.  She has heard as yet but a garbled
version.  I wish what He wishes."

"Amen!" ejaculated Bruno.  And he turned to Belasez.

She, on her part, felt too much astonished for words.  If any thing
could surprise her more than that Bruno should be actually invited to
tell the tapued story, it was the calm way in which Abraham received the
intimation that she had all but professed Christianity.  Mortal anger
and scathing contempt she could have understood and expected; but this
was utterly beyond her.

"Belasez," said Bruno, "years ago, before thou wert born, thy father had
another daughter, and her name was Anegay."

"Father! you said Anegay was not my sister!" came in surprised accents
from Belasez.  But a choking sob was the only answer from Abraham.

"She was not the daughter of thy mother, Belasez; but of thy father's
first wife, whose name was Fiona.  Perhaps he meant that.  She was
twenty years older than thou.  And--I need not make my tale long--we
met, Belasez, and we loved each other.  I told her of Christ, and she
became a Christian, and received holy baptism at my hands.  By that time
thy father had wedded thy mother.  As thou knowest, she is a staunch
Jewess; and though she did not by any means discover all, she did find
that Anegay had Christian friends, and forbade her to see them again.
Time went on, and we could scarcely ever meet, and Anegay was not very
happy.  At length, one night, a ring was brought to me which was her
usual token, praying me to meet her quickly at the house of Isabel de
Fulshaw, where we had usually met before.  I went, and found her weeping
as though her heart would break.  She told me that Licorice had been--
not very gentle with her, and had threatened to turn her out of the
house the next morning unless she would trample on the cross, as a sign
that she abjured all her Christian friends and Christ.  That, she said,
she could not do.  `I could tread on the piece of wood,' she said, `and
that would be nothing: but my mother means it for a sign of abjuring
Christ.'  And she earnestly implored me to get her into some nunnery,
where she might be safe.  Perhaps I ought to have done that.  But I
offered her another choice of safety.  And the next morning, as soon as
the canonical hours had dawned, Anegay was my wife."

Abraham spoke here, but without lifting his head.  "I was on a journey,
Belasez," he said.  "I never persecuted my darling--never!"

"No, Belasez," echoed Bruno; "he never did.  I believe he was bitterly
grieved at her becoming a Christian, but he had no hand in her
sufferings at that time.  A year or more went on, and the Lord gave us a
baby daughter.  I baptised her by the name of Beatrice, which was also
the name that her mother had received in baptism.  She was nearly a
month old, when a message came to me from the Bishop, requiring me to
come to him, which involved a journey, there and back, of about a week.
I went: and I returned--to find my home desolate.  Wife, child--even the
maid-servant,--all were gone.  An old woman, who dwelt in my parish, was
in the house, but she could tell me nothing save that a message had come
to her from Frethesind the maid, begging her to come and take charge of
the house until my return, but not giving a word of explanation.  I
could think of no place to which my wife would be likely to go, unless
her mother had been there, and had either forced or over-persuaded her
to return with her.  I hurried to Norwich with as much speed as
possible.  To my surprise, Licorice received me with apparent
kindliness, and inquired after Anegay as though no quarrel had ever
existed."

Belasez thought, with momentary amusement, that Bruno was not so well
acquainted with Licorice as herself.

"I asked in great distress if Anegay were not with her.  Licorice
assured me she knew nothing of her.  `Then you did not fetch her away?'
said I.  `How could I?' she answered.  `I have a baby in the cradle only
five weeks old.'  Well, I could not tell what to think; her words and
looks were those of truth.  She was apparently as kind as possible.  She
showed me her baby--thyself, Belasez; and encouraged me to play with
Delecresse, who was then a lively child of three years.  I came away,
baffled, yet unsatisfied.  I should have been better pleased had I seen
thy father.  But he, I was told, was again absent on one of his business
journeys."

"True," was the one word interpolated by Abraham, "I went to the house
of my friend, Walcheline de Fulshaw.  He was an apothecary.  I told my
story to him and to Isabel his wife, desiring their counsel as to the
means whereby I should get at the truth.  Walcheline seemed perplexed;
but Isabel said, `Father, I think I see how to find out the truth.  Dost
thou not remember,' she said, turning to her husband, `the maiden Rosia,
daughter of Aaron, whom thou didst heal of her sickness a year past?
Let me inquire of her.  These Jews all know each other.  The child is
bright and shrewd, and I am sure she would do what she could out of
gratitude to thee.'  Walcheline gave consent at once, and a messenger
was sent to the house of Aaron, requesting that his daughter would visit
Isabel de Fulshaw, who had need of her.  The girl came quickly, and very
intelligent she proved.  She was about twelve years of age, and was
manifestly loving and desirous to oblige Isabel, who had, as I heard
afterwards, shown her great kindness.  She said she knew Abraham thy
father well, and Licorice and Anegay.  `Had Anegay been there of late?'
Isabel asked her.  `Certainly,' answered Rosia.  `Was she there now?'
The child hesitated.  But the truth came out when Isabel pressed her.
Licorice had been absent from home, for several weeks, and when she
returned, Anegay was with her, and four men were also in her company.
Anegay had been very ill: very, very ill indeed, said the child.  But--
after long hesitation--she was better now.  `What about the baby?' asked
Isabel.  Rosia looked surprised.  She had heard of none, except
Licorice's own--thee, Belasez.  Had she spoken with Anegay?  The girl
shook her head.  Had she seen her?  Yes.  How was it, that she had seen
her, but not spoken with her?  The child replied, she was too ill to
speak; she knew no one."

"She did not know me, Belasez," said Abraham sorrowfully, lifting his
white, troubled face.  "I came home to find her there, to my great
surprise.  But she did not know me.  She took me for some other man, I
cannot tell whom.  And she kept begging me pitifully to tell Bruno--to
let Bruno know the moment he should come home: he would never, never
leave her in prison; he would be sure to rescue her.  I asked Licorice
if Anegay had come of her own will, for I was very much afraid lest some
force had been used to bring her.  But she assured me that my daughter
had returned of her own free will, only a little reluctantly, lest her
husband should not approve it.  There had been no force whatever, only a
little gentle persuasion.  And--fool that I was!--I believed it at the
time.  It was not until all was over that I heard the real truth.  What
good could come of telling Bruno then?  It would be simply to make him
miserable to no purpose.  And yet--Go on, my son."

And Abraham returned to his former position.

"Then," continued Bruno, "Isabel pressed the child Rosia harder.  She
told her that she felt certain she knew where Anegay was, and she must
tell it to her.  At last the child burst into tears.  `Oh, don't ask
me!' she said, `for I did love her so much!  I cannot believe what
Licorice says, that she is gone to Satan because she believed in the
Nazarene.  I am sure she went to God.'  `But is she dead, Rosia?' cried
Isabel.  And the child said, `She is dead.  She died yesterday
morning.'"

Bruno paused, apparently to recover his composure.

"I went back at once to this house.  I saw that Licorice instantly read
in my face that I had heard the truth: and she tried to brazen it out no
longer.  Yes, it was true, she said in answer to my passionate charges:
Anegay was dead.  I should see her if I would, to convince me.  So I
passed into an inner chamber, and there I found her lying, my own fair
darling, white and still, with the lips sealed for ever which could have
told so much--"

Bruno nearly broke down, and he had to wait for a minute before he could
proceed.

"I stood up from my dead, and I demanded of Licorice why she had done
this cruel thing.  And she said, `Why!  How little does a Christian know
the heart of a Jew!  Canst thou not guess that in our eyes it is a
degradation for a daughter of Israel to be looked on by such as you
Gentiles--that for one of you so much as to touch her hand is pollution
that only blood can wipe away?  Why!  I wanted to revenge myself on
thee, and if it were not too late, to save the child's soul.  Thou canst
hang me now, if thou wilt: I have had my revenge!'  And I said,
`Licorice, my faith teaches me that revenge must be left to God, and
that only forgiveness is for the lips of men.  I, a sinner as thou art,
must have nothing to do with vengeance.  But, O Licorice, by all that
thou deemest dear and holy, by the love that thou bearest to that babe
of thine in the cradle, I conjure thee to tell me what has become of my
child.  Is she yet living?'  She paused a while.  Then she said in a low
voice, `No, Bruno.  The journey was too much, in such a season, for so
young an infant.  She died the day after we arrived here.  Perhaps,'
said Licorice, `thou wilt not believe me; but I am sorry that the child
is dead.  I meant to bring her up a strict Jewess, and to wed her to
some Jew.  That would have been sweet to me.  She and my Belasez would
have grown together like twin sisters, for they were almost exactly of
an age.'  I could not refuse credence, for her look and tone were those
of truth.  It explained, too, if Beatrice had died so soon after
arrival, why the child Rosia had not heard of her.  So then I knew,
Belasez, that the life to which my God called me thenceforward was to be
a lonely walk with Him, sweetened by no human love any more, only by the
dear hope that Heaven would hold us all, and that when we met in the
Golden City we should part no more."

Tears were dimming Belasez's eyes.  Bruno turned to Abraham.

"Now, my father, I have done thy will.  But suffer me to say that it is
no slight perplexity to me, why thou hast thought it meet that this
sorrowful story should be told to the child of her that did the wrong."

Abraham made no answer but to rise from the position in which he had
been sitting all the time, and to walk straight to the window.  He
seemed unwilling to speak, and his companions looked at him in doubtful
surprise.  They had to wait, however, till he turned from the window,
and came and stood before Bruno.

"Son," he said, "what saith thy faith to this question?--When a man hath
taken the wrong road, and hath wandered far away from right, from truth,
and God, is it ever too late, while life lasts, for him to turn and come
back?"

"Never," was Bruno's answer.

"And is it, under any circumstances, lawful for a man to lie unto his
neighbour?"

Bruno, like many another, was better than his system; and at that time
the Church herself had not reached those depths of legalised iniquity
wherein she afterwards plunged.  So that he had no hesitation in
repeating, "Never."

"Then hear the truth, Bruno de Malpas; and if it well-nigh break an old
man's heart to tell it, it is better that I should suffer and die for
God's sake than that I should live for mine.  On one point, Licorice
deceived thee to the last.  And until now, I, even I, have aided her in
duping thee.  Yet it is written, `He that confesseth and forsaketh his
sin shall find mercy.'  May it not be too late for me!"

"Assuredly not, my father.  But what canst thou mean?"

"Bruno, thy child did not die the day after she came hither."

"Father!  Thou art not going to tell me--"

Bruno's voice had in it a strange mixture of agony and hope.

"Son, thy Beatrice lives."

Before either could speak further, Belasez had thrown herself on her
knees, and flung her arms around Abraham.

"O Father, if it be so, speak quickly, and end his agony!  For the sake
of the righteous Lord, that loveth righteousness, do, do give Father
Bruno back his child!"

Abraham disengaged himself from Belasez's clinging arms with what seemed
almost a shudder.  He took up his long robe, and tore it from the skirt
to the neck.  Then, with a voice almost choked with emotion, he laid
both hands, as if in blessing, on the head of the kneeling Belasez.

"Beatrice de Malpas," he said, "Thou art that child."

A low cry from Bruno, a more passionate exclamation from Belasez, and
the father and daughter were clasped heart to heart.



CHAPTER ELEVEN.

WHAT CAME OF IT.

  "Content to fill Religion's vacant place
  With hollow form, and gesture, and grimace."

  _Cowper_.

"Nay, my son, it is of no use.  I shall never forsake the faith of my
fathers.  For this child, if she can believe it,--well: she is more
thine than mine,--_ay Dios_!  And perhaps there is this much change in
me, that I have come to think it just possible that it may not be
idolatry to fancy the Nazarene was the Messiah.  How can I tell?  We
know so little, and Adonai knows so much!  But the cowslip is easily
transplanted: the old oak will take no new rooting.  Let the old oak
alone.  And there are other things in thy faith, my son,--a maiden whom
I should deem it sin to worship, images of stone before which no Jew may
bow down, a thing you call the Church, which we cannot understand, but
which seems to bind you all, hand and foot, soul and body, as a slave is
bound by his master.  I cannot take up with those."

"Nor I," said Belasez in a low voice.

"Then do not," was the quiet answer of Bruno.  "I shall never ask it of
either of you."

"But thou believest all these?" said Abraham.

"I believe Jesus Christ my Lord.  The rest is all to me a very little
matter.  I never pray with an image; I need it not.  If another man
think he does need it, to his own conscience I leave it before God.  For
Mary, Mother and Maid, I honour her, as you maybe honour your mother.
_I_ do not worship her: about other men I say nothing.  And as to the
Church,--why, what is the Church but a congregation of saved souls, to
whom Christ is Lawgiver and Saviour?  Her laws are His: or if not, then
they have no right to be hers."

"Ah Bruno," said Abraham rather sadly, "thy religion is not that of
other Christians."

"It is better," said Belasez softly.

"Father, my Christianity is Christ.  I concern not myself with other
men, except to save them, so far as it pleases God to work by me."

"Well, well!  May Adonai forgive us all!--My son, what dost thou mean to
do with the child?  It is for thee to decide now."

"My father, I shall endeavour to obtain absolution from my vows, and to
become once more a parish priest, so that my Beatrice may dwell with me.
Until then, choose thou whether she shall remain with thee, or go back
to Bury Castle.  I am sure the Lady would gladly receive her."

"Nay, Bruno, do not ask me to choose!  If the child be here when
Licorice returns, she will never dwell with thee.  I believe she would
well-nigh stab us both to the heart sooner than permit it.  And I fear
she may come any day."

"Then she had better come with me to Bury."

"`It is Adonai!'  So be it."

"But I shall see thee, my father?" asked Belasez, addressing Abraham.

"Trust me for that, my Belasez!  I can come to thee on my trade
journeys, so long as it pleases the Holy One that I have strength to
take them.  And after that--He will provide.  My son, wilt thou come for
the child to-morrow?  I will let thee out at the postern door; for thou
hadst better not meet Delecresse."

And Abraham drew back the bolt, and opened the baize door.

"Father Jacob!" they heard him instantly ejaculate, in a very different
tone from that of his last words.

"What hast thou been about now?" demanded the shrill voice of Licorice
in the passage outside.  "When folks are frightened at the sight of
their lawful wives, it is a sure sign they have been after some
mischief.  Is there any one in yon chamber except thyself?--Ah, Belasez,
I am glad to see thee; 'tis more than I expected.  But, child, thou
shouldst have set the porridge on half an hour ago; go down and look to
it.--Any body else?  Come, I had best see for myself."

And Licorice pushed past her husband, and walked into the room where
Bruno was standing.  He came forward to meet her, with far more apparent
calmness than Abraham seemed to feel.

"Good even, my mother," he said courteously.

"If I were thy mother, I would hang myself from the first gable," hissed
Licorice between her closed teeth.  "I know thee, Bruno de Malpas, thou
vile grandson of a locust!  Nay, locust is too good for thee: they are
clean beasts, and thou art an unclean.  Thou hare, camel, coney,
night-hawk, raven, lobster, earwig, hog!  I spit on thee seven times,"--
and she did it--"I deliver thee over to Satan thy master--"

"That thou canst not," quietly said Bruno.

"I sweep thee out of my house!"  And suiting the action to the word,
Licorice caught up a broom which stood in the corner, and proceeded to
apply it with good will.  Bruno retreated, as was but natural he should.

"Licorice, my dear wife!"

"I'll sweep _thee_ out next!" cried Licorice, brandishing her broom in
the very face of her lord and master.  "I'll have no Christians, nor
Christian blood, nor Christian faith, in my house, as I am a living
daughter of Abraham!  Get you all out hence, ye loathsome creeping
things, which whosoever toucheth shall be unclean!  Get ye out, I say!--
Belasez, bring me soap and water.  I'll not sleep till I've washed the
floor.  I'd wash the air if I could."

"Your pardon, Mother, but if you will have no Christian blood in your
house, you must sweep me out," answered Belasez, with a mixture of
dignity and irrepressible amusement.

Licorice turned round to Abraham.

"Thou hast told her?"

"It was better she should know, wife."

"I'll chop thy head off, if I hear thee say that again!--And dost thou
mean to be a Christian, thou wicked girl?"

"I do, Mother.  And I mean to go with my father."

"Go, then--like to like!--and all the angels of Satan go with thee!"

And the broom came flying after Belasez.

"Nay, wife, give the child her raiment and jewels."

"I'll give her what belongs to her, and that's a hot iron, if she does
not get out of that door this minute!"

"Wife!"

"I'll spoil her pretty face for her!" shrieked Licorice.  "I never liked
the vain chit overmuch, nor Anegay neither: but if she does not go, I'll
give her something she won't forget in a hurry!"

"Come, my Beatrice,--quick!" said Bruno.

"Go, go, my Belasez, and God keep thee!" sobbed Abraham.

And so Belasez was driven away from her old home.  She had hardly
expected it.  It had always been a trouble to her, and a cause of
self-reproach, that she and Licorice did not love each other better: and
she was not able to repress a sensation of satisfaction in making the
discovery that Licorice was not her mother.  Yet Belasez had not looked
for this.

"What are we to do, Father?" she asked rather blankly.

"I must lodge thee with the Sisters of Saint Clare, my child; there is
nothing else to be done.  I will come and fetch thee away so soon as my
arrangements can be made."

Beatrice,--as we must henceforth call her,--did not fancy this
arrangement at all.  Bruno detected as much in her face.

"Thou dost not like it, my dove?"

"I do not like being with strangers," she said frankly.  "And I am
afraid the nuns will think me a variety of heathen, for I cannot do all
they will want me."

"They will not, if I tell the Abbess that thou art a new convert," said
Bruno.  "They may very likely attempt to instruct thee."

"Father, why should there be any nuns?"

Beatrice did not know how she astonished Bruno.  But he only smiled.

"Thine eyes are unaccustomed to the light," was all he answered.

"But, Father, among our people of old,--I mean," said Beatrice
hesitatingly, "my mother's people--"

"Go on, my Beatrice.  Let it be `our people.'  Speak as it is nature to
thee to do."

"Thank you, my father.  Among our people, there were no nuns.  So far
from it, that for a woman to remain unwed was considered a reproach."

"Why?--dost thou know?"

"I think, because every woman longed for the glory of being the mother
of the Messiah."

"True.  Therefore, Christ being come, that reproach is done away.  Let
each woman choose for herself.  `If a virgin marry, she hath not
sinned.'  Nevertheless, `she that is unmarried thinks of the things of
the Lord, that she may be holy, body and soul.'"

"Father, do you wish _me_ to be a nun?"

"Never!" hastily answered Bruno.  "Nay, my Beatrice; I should not have
said that.  Be thou what the Lord thinks best to make thee.  But I do
not want to be left alone again."

Beatrice's heart was set at rest.  She had terribly feared for a moment
lest Bruno, being himself a monk, might think her absolutely bound to be
a nun.

They soon reached the Franciscan Convent.  The Abbess, a rather
stiffly-mannered, grey-haired woman, received her young guest with
sedate kindliness, and committed her to the special charge of Sister
Eularia.  This was a young woman of about twenty-five, in whose mind
curiosity was strongly developed.  She took Beatrice up to the
dormitory, showed her where she was to sleep, and gave her a seat on the
form beside her at supper, which was almost immediately served.
Beatrice noticed that whenever Eularia helped herself to any thing
edible, she made the sign of the cross over it.

"Why dost thou do that?" asked the young Jewess.

"It is according to our rule," replied the nun.  "Surely thou knowest
how to cross thyself?"

"Indeed I do not.  And I do not see why I should."

"Poor thing!--how sadly thou lackest teaching!  Dost thou not know that
our Lord Christ suffered on the cross?"

"Oh yes!  But why must I cross myself on that account?"

"In respect to Him!" exclaimed Eularia.

"Pardon me.  If one whom I loved were slain by the sword, I should not
courtesy to every sword I saw, because I loved him.  I should hate the
very sight of one."

Eularia was scarcely less puzzled than Beatrice.

"It is the symbol of our salvation," she said.

"I should look on it rather as the symbol of His suffering."

"True: but He suffered for us."

"For which reason I should still less admire that which made Him
suffer."

Eularia shrugged her shoulders.

"Thou art very ignorant."

The discussion slumbered until they rose from supper; when Eularia
seated Beatrice beside her on the settle, and offered to instruct her in
the use of the rosary.

"What a pretty necklace!  I thought nuns did not wear ornaments?"

"Ornaments!  Of course not."

"Then what do you do with that?"

"We pray by it."

"Pray--by--it!  I do not understand."

"We keep count of our prayers."

"Count!--why?"

"Why, how could we remember them else?"

"But why should you remember?"

"Poor ignorant child!  When thou comest to make confession, thou wilt
find that the priest will set thee for penance, so many Aves and so many
Paternosters."

"What are those?"

"Dost thou never pray?" gasped Eularia.

"I never say so many of one thing, and so many of another," answered
Beatrice, half laughing.  "I never heard anything so absurd.  The holy
prophets did not pray in that way."

"Of course they did!" exclaimed Eularia.  "How could they obtain help of
our Lady, without repeating Ave and Salve?"

"How could they, indeed, before she was born?" was the retort.

"Oh dear, dear!" said Eularia.  "Why, thou knowest nothing."

Beatrice privately thought that she would prefer not to know all that
rubbish.  Plenty of it was served up to her before she left the convent,
by the holy Sisters of Saint Clare.

It was nearly three weeks before Bruno came for her, and very weary of
her hosts she was.  They were no less astonished and dismayed by her.
The ignorant heathen would not worship the holy images, would not use
holy water, would not kneel before the holy Sacrament, would not do
this, that, and the other: and, not content with this series of
negations, she actually presumed to reason about them!

"What dost thou believe?" despairingly demanded Sister Eularia at last.

"I believe in God," said Beatrice gravely.  "And I believe that Jesus of
Nazareth was the Sent of God."

"And in the Holy Ghost?" asked Eularia.

"If I understand you, certainly.  Is it not written, `The Spirit of God
hath made me'?"

"And in holy Church?"

"I do not know.  What is it?"

"How shocking!  And in the forgiveness of sins?"

"Assuredly."

"And in the resurrection and eternal life?"

"Undoubtedly."

"And in the invocation of the holy saints?"

"I believe that there have been holy men and women."

"And dost thou invoke them?"

"Do you mean, pray to them?"

"Dost thou beg of them to intercede for thee?"

"No, indeed, not I!"

"Did I ever see such ignorance!  And thou wilt not learn."

"I will learn of my father, and no one else.  I am sure he does not
believe half the rubbish you do."

"_Sancta Hilaria, or a pro nobis_!"

"What language is that?" innocently asked Beatrice.

"The holy tongue, of course."

"It is not our holy tongue."

"Have Jews a holy tongue?" responded Eularia, in surprise.

"Yes, indeed,--Hebrew."

"I did not know they believed any thing to be holy.  Have they any
relics?"

"I do not know what those are."

Eularia led the way to the sacristy.

"Look here," she said, reverently opening a golden reliquary set with
rubies.  "Here is a small piece of the holy veil of our foundress, Saint
Clare.  This is the finger-bone of the blessed Evangelist Matthew.  Here
is a piece of the hoof of the holy ass on which our Lord rode.  Now thou
knowest what relics are."

"But what can make you keep such things as those?" asked Beatrice,
opening wide her lustrous eyes.

"And this," enthusiastically added Eularia, opening another reliquary
set with emeralds and pearls, "is our most precious relic,--one of the
small feathers from the wing of the holy angel, Saint Gabriel."

To the intense horror of Eularia, a silver laugh of unmistakable
amusement greeted this holy relic.

"Beatrice! hast thou no reverence?"

"Not for angels' feathers," answered Beatrice, still laughing.  "Well, I
did think you had more sense!"

"I can assure thee, thou wilt shock Father Bruno if thou allowest
thyself to commit such improprieties."

"I shall shock him, then.  How excessively absurd!"

Eularia took her unpromising pupil out of the sacristy more hastily than
she had led her in.  And perhaps it was as well for Beatrice that Father
Bruno arrived the next day.

They reached Bury Castle in safety.  The Countess had been very much
interested in Father Bruno's story, and most readily acceded to his
request to leave Beatrice as her visitor until he should have a home to
which he could take her.  And Beatrice de Malpas, the daughter of a
baronial house in Cheshire, was a very different person in the
estimation of a Christian noble from Belasez, daughter of the Jew
pedlar.

Rather to her surprise, she found herself seated above the salt, that
is, treated as a lady of rank: and the embargo being over which had
confined her to Margaret's apartments, she took her place at the Earl's
table in the banquet-hall.  Earl Hubert's quick eyes soon found out the
addition to his supper-party, and he condescended to remark that she was
extremely pretty, and quite an ornament to the hall.  Beatrice herself
was much pleased to find her old friend Doucebelle seated next to her,
and they soon began to converse on recent events.

It is a curious fact as concerns human nature, that however long friends
may have been parted, their conversation nearly always turns on what has
happened just before they met again.  They do not speak of what
delighted or agonised them ten years ago, though the effect may have
extended to the whole of their subsequent lives.  They talk of last
week's journey, or of yesterday's snow-storm.

Beatrice fully expected Doucebelle's sympathy on the subject of relics,
and she was disappointed to find it not forthcoming.  Doucebelle was
rather inclined to be shocked than amused.  The angel's feather, in her
eyes, was provocative of any thing rather than ridicule: and Beatrice,
who had anticipated her taking the common-sense view of the matter, felt
chilled by the result.

Life had fallen back into its old grooves at Bury Castle.  Grief, with
the Countess, was usually a passionate, but also a transitory feeling.
Her extremely easy temper led her to get rid of a sorrow as soon as ever
she could.  Pain, whether mental or bodily, was in her eyes not a
necessary discipline, but an unpleasant disturbance of the proper order
of events.  In fact, she was one of those persons who are always popular
by reason of their gracious affability, but in whom, below the fair flow
of sweet waters, there is a strong substratum of stony selfishness.  She
objected to people being in distress, not because it hurt them, but
because it hurt her to see them.  And the difference between the two,
though it may scarcely show at times on the surface, lies in an entire
and essential variety of the strata underneath.

It was only natural that, with this character, the Countess should
expect others to be as little impressed by suffering as herself.  She
really had no conception of a disposition to which sorrow was not an
easily-healed scratch, but a scar that would be carried to the grave.
In her eyes, the calamity which had happened to her daughter was a
disappointment, undoubtedly, but one which she would find no difficulty
in surmounting at all.  There were plenty of other men in the world,
quite as handsome, as amiable, as rich, and as noble, as Richard de
Clare.  If such a grief had happened to herself, she would have wept
incessantly for a week, been low-spirited for a month, and in a year
would have been wreathed with smiles, and arranging her trousseau for a
wedding with another bridegroom.  The only thing which could really have
distressed her long, would have been if the vacant place in her life had
_not_ been refilled.

But Margaret's character was of a deeper type.  For her the world held
no other man, and life's blossom once blighted, no second crop of
happiness could grow, at least on the same tree.  To such a character as
this, the only possibility of throwing out fresh bloom is when the tree
is grafted by the great Husbandman with amaranth from Heaven.

Yet it was not in Margaret's nature--it would have been in her
mother's--to say much of what she felt.  Outwardly, she showed no
difference, except that her _coeur leger_ was gone, never to return.
She did not shut herself up and refuse to join in the employments or
amusements of those around her.  And the majority of those around never
suspected that the work and the amusement alike had no interest for her,
nor would ever have any: that she "could never think as she had thought,
or be as she had been, again."

One person only perceived the truth, and that was because he was cast in
a like mould.  Bruno saw too plainly that the hope expressed by the
Countess that "Magot was getting nicely over her disappointment" was not
true,--never would be true.  In his case the amaranth had been grafted
in, and the plant was blossoming again.  But there was no such hope for
her, at least as yet.

Beatrice was unable to enter into Margaret's feelings, not so much
through want of capacity as of experience.  Eva was equally unable,
being naturally at once of a more selfish and a less concentrated
disposition: her mind would have been more easily drawn from her
sorrow,--an important item of the healing process.  Doucebelle came
nearest; but as she was the most selfless of all, her grief in like case
would have been rather for the sufferings of Richard than for her own.

Beatrice soon carried the relic question to her father for decision;
though with some trepidation as to what he would say.  If he should not
agree with her, she would be sorely disappointed.  Bruno's smile half
reassured her.

"So thou canst not believe in the genuineness of these relics?" said he.
"Well, my child, so that thou hast full faith in Christ and His
salvation, I cannot think it much matters whether thou believest a
certain piece of stuff to be the veil of Saint Clare or not.  Neither
Saint Clare nor her veil is concerned in thine eternal safety."

"But Doucebelle seems almost shocked.  She does believe in them."

"Perhaps it will not harm her--with the like proviso."

"But, Father!--the honour in which they hold these rags and bones seems
to me like idolatry!"

"Then be careful thou commit it not."

"But _you_ do not worship such things?"

"Dear child, I find too much in Christ and in this perishing world, to
have much time to think of them."

Beatrice was only half satisfied.  She would have felt more contented
had Bruno warmly disclaimed the charge.  It was at the cost of some
distress that she realised that what were serious essentials to her were
comparatively trivial matters to him.  The wafts of polluted air were
only too patent to her, which were lost in the purer atmosphere, at the
altitude where Bruno stood.

The girls were gathered together one afternoon in the ante-chamber of
Margaret's apartments, and Bruno, who had come up to speak to his
daughter, was with them.  Except in special cases, no chamber of any
house was sacred from a priest.  Eva was busy spinning, but it would be
more accurate to say that Marie, who was supposed to be spinning also,
was engaged in breaking threads.  Margaret was employed on
tapestry-work; Doucebelle in plain sewing; and Beatrice with her
delicate embroidery.

"Father," said Beatrice, looking up suddenly, "I was taught that it was
sin to make images of created things, on account of the words of the
second commandment.  What do you say?"

"`_Non fades tibi sculptile, neque omnem similitudinem_,'" murmured
Bruno, reflectively.  "I think, my child, that it depends very much on
the meaning of `_tibi_' Ah, I see in thy face thou hast learned no
Latin.  `Thou shalt not make _to thee_ any sculptured image.'  Then a
sculptured image may be made otherwise.  The latter half of the
commandment, I think, shows what is meant.  `_Non adorabis ea, neque
coles_'--`thou shalt not worship them.'  At the same time, Saint Paul
saith, `_Omne autem, quod non est ex fide, peccatum est_'--`all that is
not of faith is sin;' and `_nisi ei qui existimat quid commune esse,
illi commune est_': namely, `to him who esteemeth a thing unclean, to
him it is unclean.'  If thou really believest it sin, by no means allow
thyself to do it."

"But, Father, suppose we cannot be sure?" said Doucebelle.

"Thou needst not fear that thou wilt ever walk _too_ close to Christ,
daughter," quietly answered Bruno.

"But, Father I are we bound to give up all that can possibly be sin, or
even can become sin?" asked Eva, in a tone which decidedly indicated
dissent.

"I should like to hear thy objection, daughter."

"Why, we should have to give up every thing nice!" said Eva,
disconsolately.  "There are all sorts of delightful things, which are
not exactly sins, but--"

"Not quite virtues," interposed Beatrice, with an amused expression, as
Eva paused.

"Well, no.  Still they are not wrong--in themselves.  But they make one
waste one's time, or forget to say one's beads, or be cross to one's
sister,--just because they are so delightful, and one does not want to
give over.  And being cross is sin, I suppose; and so it is when one
forgets to say one's prayers: I don't know whether wasting time is
exactly a sin."

"I see," said Bruno, in the same quiet tone.  "Had our Lord sent thee to
clear His Temple of the profane who desecrated it by traffic, thou
wouldst have overthrown the tables of the money-changers, but not the
seats of them that sold doves."

Beatrice and Doucebelle answered by a smile of intelligence; Eva looked
rather dissatisfied.

"But it is not a sin to be happy, Father?" asked Margaret in a low
voice.

"Not if God give thee the happiness."

"That is just it!" said Eva, discontentedly.  "How is one to know?"

"My child," answered Bruno, ignoring the tone, "God never means His
children to put any thing into the place of Himself.  The moment thou
dost that, that thing is sin to thee."

"But when do we do that, Father?" asked Doucebelle.

"When it makes thee forget to say thy prayers, I should think," drily
observed Beatrice.

"When it comes in the way between Him and thee," said Bruno.

"And is it a sin to waste time, Father?" queried Eva.

"It is a sin to waste any thing," answered Bruno.  "But if it be more a
sin to waste one thing than another, surely it is to waste life itself."

He rose and went away.  Eva shrugged her shoulders with a wry face.

"There never was any body so precise as Father Bruno!  I would rather
ask questions of Father Nicholas, ten times over."

"Well, I don't like asking questions of Father Nicholas," responded
Doucebelle, "because he never answers them.  He never goes down to the
bottom of things."

"_Ha, chetife_!" cried Eva.  "Dost thou want to get to the bottom of
things?  That is just why I like Father Nicholas, because he never
bothers one with reasons and distinctions.  It is only, `Yes, thou
mayest do so,' or `No, do not do that,'--and then I am satisfied.  Now,
Father Bruno will persist in explaining why I am not to do it, and that
sometimes makes me want to do it all the more.  It seems to leave it in
one's own hands."

Beatrice broke into a laugh.  "Why, Eva, thou wouldst rather be a chair
to be moved about, than a woman to be able to go at pleasure."

"I would rather have a distinct order," said Eva, a little scornfully.
"`Do,' or `Don't,' I can understand.  But, `Saint Paul says this,' or
`Saint John says that,' and to have to make up one's own mind,--I detest
it."

"And I should detest the opposite."

"I am afraid, Beatrice, thou art greatly wanting in the virtue of holy
obedience.  But of course one can make allowances for thine unhappy
education."

Eva had occasion to leave the room at the conclusion of this
unflattering speech: and Beatrice indulged in a long laugh.

"Well, what I am afraid of," she said to Margaret and Doucebelle, "is
that Eva is rather wanting in the virtue of common-sense.  But whether I
am to lay that on her education, I do not know."

There was no answer: but the thoughts of the hearers were almost
opposites.  Margaret considered Beatrice rash and self-satisfied.
Doucebelle thought heartily with her, and only wished that she had as
much courage to say so.



CHAPTER TWELVE.

WHAT IS LOVE?

  "She only said, `My life is dreary,
  He cometh not,' she said:
  She said, `I am aweary, weary,
  I would that I were dead!'"

  _Tennyson_.

It was fortunate for Bruno de Malpas that he had a friend in Bishop
Grosteste, whose large heart and clear brain were readily interested in
his wish to return from regular to secular orders.  He smoothed the path
considerably, and promised him a benefice in his diocese if the
dispensation could be obtained.  But the last was a lengthy process, and
some months passed away before the answer could be received from Rome.

It greatly scandalised Hawise and Eva--for different reasons--to see how
very little progress was made by Beatrice in that which in their eyes
was the Christian religion.  It was a comfort to them to reflect that
she had been baptised as an infant, and therefore in the event of sudden
death had a chance of going to Heaven, instead of the dreadful certainty
of being shut up in Limbo,--a place of vague locality and vaguer
character, being neither pleasant nor painful, but inhabited by all the
hapless innocents whose heathen or careless Christian parents suffered
them to die unregenerated.  But both of them were sorely shocked to
discover, when she had been about two months at Bury, that poor Beatrice
was still ignorant of the five commandments of the Church.  Nor was this
all: she irreverently persisted in her old inquiry of "What is the
Church?" and sturdily demanded what right the Church had to give
commandments.

Hawise was quite distressed.  It was not _proper_,--a phrase which, with
her, was the strongest denunciation that could be uttered.  Nobody had
ever asked such questions before: _ergo_, they ought never to be asked.
Every sane person knew perfectly well what the Church was (though, when
gently urged by Beatrice, Hawise backed out of any definition), and no
good Catholic could possibly require telling.  And as to so shocking a
supposition as that the Church had no right to issue her own commands,--
well, it was not proper!

Eva's objection was quite as strong, but of a different sort.  She
really could not understand what Beatrice wanted.  If the priest--or the
Church--they were very much the same thing--told her what to do, could
she not rest and be thankful?  It was a great deal less trouble than
everlastingly thinking for one's self.

"No one of any note ever thinks for himself," chimed in Hawise.

"Then I am glad I am not of any note!" bluntly responded Beatrice.

"You a De Malpas!  I am quite shocked!" said Hawise.

"God made me with a heart and a conscience," was the answer.  "If He had
not meant me to use them, He would not have given them to me."

At that point Beatrice left the room in answer to a call from the
Countess; and Hawise, turning to her companions, remarked in a whisper
that it must be that dreadful Jewish blood on the mother's side which
had given her such very improper notions.  They were _so_ low!  "For my
part," she added, "if it were proper to say so, I should remark that I
cannot imagine why Father Bruno does not see that she understands
something of Christianity--but of course one must not criticise a
priest."

"Speak truth, my daughter," said a voice from the doorway which rather
disconcerted Hawise.  "Thou canst not understand my actions--in what
respect?"

"I humbly crave your pardon, Father; but I am really distressed about
Beatrice."

"Indeed!--how so?"

"She understands nothing about Christian duties."

"I hope that is a little more than truth.  But if not,--let her
understand Christ first, my child: Christian duties will come after."

"Forgive _me_, Father--without teaching?"

"Not without His teaching," said Bruno, gravely.  "Without mine, it may
be."

"But, Father, she does not know the five commandments of holy Church.
Nay, she asks what `the Church' means."

"If she be in the Church, she can wait to know it.  Thy garments will
not keep thee less warm because thou hast never learned how to weave
them."

Hawise did not reply, but she looked unconvinced.

A few days after this, Eva was pleased to inform Beatrice that she had
been so happy as to reach that point which in her eyes was the apex of
feminine ambition.

"I am betrothed to Sir William de Cantilupe."

Margaret sighed.

"Dost thou like him?" asked Beatrice, in her straightforward way, which
was sometimes a shade too blunt, and was apt to betray her into asking
direct questions which it might have been kinder and more delicate to
leave unasked.

Eva blushed and simpered.

"I'll tell thee, Beatrice," said little Marie, dancing up.  "She's over
head and ears in love--so much over head,"--and Marie's hand went as
high as it would go above her own: "but it's my belief she has tumbled
in on the wrong side."

"`The wrong side'!" answered Beatrice, laughing.  "The wrong side of
love? or the wrong side of Eva?"

"The wrong side of Eva," responded Marie, with a positive little nod.
"As to love, I'm not quite sure that she knows much about it: for I
don't believe she cares half so much for Sir William as she cares for
being married.  That's the grand thing with her, so far as I can make
out.  And that's not my notion of love."

"Thou silly little child of twelve, what dost thou know about it?"
contemptuously demanded Eva.  "Thy time is not come."

"No, and I hope it won't," said Marie, "if I'm to make such a goose of
myself over it as thou dost."

"Marie, Marie!"

"It's true, Margaret!--Now, Beatrice, dost thou not think so?  She makes
a regular misery of it.  There is no living with her for a day or two
before he comes to see her.  She never gives him a minute's peace when
he is here; and if he looks at somebody else, she goes as black as a
thunder-cloud.  If he's half an hour late, she's quite sure he is
visiting some other gentlewoman, whom he loves better than he loves her.
She's for ever making little bits of misery out of nothing.  If he were
to call her `honey-sweet Eva' to-day, and only `sweet Eva' to-morrow,
she would be positive there was some shocking reason for it, instead of,
like a sensible girl, never thinking about it in that way at all."

Beatrice and Doucebelle were both laughing, and even Margaret joined in
a little.

"Of course," said Marie by way of postscript, "if Sir William had been
badly hurt in a tournament, or anything of that sort, I could understand
her worrying about it: or if he had told her that he did not love her, I
could understand that: but she worries for nothing at all!  If he does
not tell her that he loves her every time he comes, she fancies he
doesn't."

"Marie, don't be so silly!"

"Thanks, I'll try not," said Marie keenly.  "And she calls that love!
What dost thou think, Beatrice?"

"Why, I think it does not sound much like it, Marie--in thy
description."

"Why, what notion of love hast thou?" said Eva scornfully.  "I have not
forgotten how thou wert wont to talk of thy betrothed."

"But I never professed to love Leo," said Beatrice, looking up.  "How
could I, when I had not seen him?"

"Dost thou want to see, in order to love?" sentimentally inquired Eva.

"No," answered Beatrice, thoughtfully.  "But I want to know.  I might
easily love some one whom I had not seen with my eyes, if he were always
sending me messages and doing kind actions for me: but I could not love
somebody who was to me a mere name, and nothing more."

"It is plain thou hast no sensitiveness, Beatrice."

"I'd rather have sense,--wouldn't you?" said little Marie.

"As if one could not have both!" sneered Eva.

"Well, if one could, I should have thought thou wouldst," retorted
Marie.

"Well!  I don't understand you!" said Eva.  "I cannot care to be loved
with less than the whole heart.  I should not thank you for just the
love that you can spare from other people."

"But should not one have some to spare for other people?" suggested
Marie.

"That sounds as if one's heart were a box," said Beatrice, "that would
hold so much and no more.  Is it not more like a fountain, that can give
out perpetually and always have fresh supplies within?"

"Yes, for the beloved one," replied Eva, warmly.

"For all," answered Beatrice.  "That is a narrow heart which will hold
but one person."

"Well, I would rather be loved with the whole of a narrow heart than
with a piece of a broad one."

"O Eva!"

"What dost thou mean, Doucebelle?" said Eva, sharply, turning on her new
assailant.  "Indeed I would!  The man who loves me must love me
supremely--must care for nothing but me: must find his sweetest reward
for every thing in my smile, and his bitterest pain in my displeasure.
That is what I call love."

"Well!  I should call that something else--if Margaret wouldn't scold,"
murmured Marie in an undertone.

"What is that, Marie?" asked Margaret, with a smile.

"Self-conceit; and plenty of it," said the child.

"Ask Father Bruno what he thinks, Beatrice," suggested Margaret, after a
gentle "Hush!" to the somewhat too plain-spoken Marie.  "Thou canst do
it, but it would not come so well from us."

"Dost thou mean to say I am conceited, little piece of impertinence?"
inquired Eva, in no dulcet tones.

"Well, I thought thou saidst it thyself," was the response, for which
Marie got chased round the room with the wooden side of an embroidery
frame, and, being lithe as a monkey, escaped by flying to the Countess's
rooms, which communicated with those of her daughter by a private
staircase.

Father Bruno came up, as he often did, the same evening: but before
Beatrice had time to consult him, the small Countess of Eu appeared from
nowhere in particular, and put the crucial question in its crudest form.

"Please, Father Bruno, what is love?"

"Dost thou want telling?" inquired Bruno with evident amusement.

"Please, we all want telling, because we can't agree."

Bruno very rarely laughed, but he did now.

"Then, if you cannot agree, you certainly do need it.  I should rather
like to hear the various opinions."

"Oh!  Eva says--" began the child eagerly; but Bruno's hand, laid gently
on her head, stopped her.

"Wait, my child.  Let each speak for herself."

There was silence for a moment, for no one liked to begin--except Marie,
whom decorum alone kept silent.

"What didst thou say, Eva?"

"I believe I said, good Father, that I cared not for the love of any
that did not hold me first and best.  Nor do I."

"`Love seeketh not her own,'" said Bruno.  "That which seeks its own is
not love."

"What is it, Father?" modestly asked Doucebelle.

"It is self-love, my daughter; the worst enemy that can be to the true
love of God and man.  Real love is unselfish, unexacting, and immortal."

"But love can die, surely!"

"Saint Paul says the contrary, my daughter."

"It can kill, I suppose," said Margaret, in a low tone.

"Yes, the weak," replied Bruno.

"But, Father, was the holy Apostle not speaking of religious love?"
suggested Eva, trying to find a loophole.

"What is the alternative,--irreligious love?  I do not know of such a
thing, my daughter."

"But there is a wicked sort of love."

"Certainly not.  There are wicked passions.  But love can never be
wicked, because God is love."

"But people can love wickedly?" asked Eva, looking puzzled.

"I fail to see how any one can _love_ wickedly.  Self-love is always
wicked."

"Then, Father, if it be wicked, you call it self-love?" said Eva,
leaping (very cleverly, as she thought) to a conclusion.

"Scarcely," said Bruno, with a quiet smile.  "Say rather, my daughter,
that if it be self-love, I call it wicked."

The perplexed expression returned to Eva's face.

"My child, what is love?"

"Why, Father, that is just what we want to know," said Marie.

But Bruno waited for Eva's answer.

"I suppose," she said nervously, "it means liking a person, and wishing
for his company, and wanting him to love one."

"And I suppose that it is caring for him so much that thou wouldst count
nothing too great a sacrifice, to attain his highest good.  That is how
God loved us, my children."

Eva thought this extremely poor and tame, beside her own lovely ideal.

"Then," said Marie, "if I love Margaret, I shall want _her_ to be happy.
I shall not want her to make me happy, unless it would make her so."

"Right, my child," said Bruno, with a smile of approbation.  "To do
otherwise would be loving Marie, not Margaret."

"But, Father!" exclaimed Eva.  "Do you mean to say that if my betrothed
prefers to go hawking rather than sit with me, if I love him I shall
wish him to leave me?"

"Whom wouldst thou be loving, if not?"

"I could not wish him to go and leave me!"

"My child, there is a divine self-abnegation to which very few attain.
But those few come nearest to the imitation of Him who `pleased not
Himself,' and I think--God knoweth--often they are the happiest.  Let us
all ask God for grace to reach it.  `This is My commandment, that ye
have love one to another.'"

And, as was generally the case when he had said all he thought necessary
at the moment, Bruno rose, and with a benediction quitted the room.

"Call that loving!" said Eva, contemptuously, when he was gone.  "Poor
tame stuff!  I should not thank you for it."

"Well, I should," said Doucebelle, quietly.

"Oh, thou!" was Eva's answer, in the same tone.  "Why, thou hast no
heart to begin with."

Doucebelle silently doubted that statement.

"O Eva, for shame!" said Marie.  "Doucebelle always does what every body
wants her, unless she thinks it is wrong."

"Thou dost not call that love, I hope?"

"I think it is quite as like it as wishing people to do what they don't
want, to please you," said Marie, sturdily.

"I don't believe one of you knows any thing about it," loftily returned
Eva.  "If I had been Margaret, now, I could not have sat quietly to that
broidery.  I could not have borne it!"

Margaret looked up quickly, changed colour, and with a slight
compression of her lower lip, went back to her work in silence.

"But what wouldst thou have done, Eva?" demanded the practical little
Marie.  "Wouldst thou have stared out of the window all day long?"

"No!" returned Eva with fervent emphasis.  "I should have wept my life
away.  But Margaret is not like me.  She can get interested in work and
other things, and forget a hapless love, and outlive it.  It would kill
me in a month."

Margaret rose very quietly, put her frame by in the corner, and left the
room.  Beatrice, who had been silent for some time, looked up then with
expressive eyes.

"It is killing her, Eva.  My father told me so a week since.  He says he
is quite sure that the Countess is mistaken in fancying that she is
getting over it."

"She!  She is as strong as a horse.  And I don't think she ever felt it
much!  Not as I should have done.  I should have taken the veil that
very day.  Earth would have been a dreary waste to me from that instant.
I could not have borne to see a man again.  However many years I might
have lived, no sound but the _Miserere_--"

"But, Eva!  I thought thou wert going to die in a month."

"It is very rude to interrupt, Marie.  No sound but the _Miserere_ would
ever have broken the chill echoes of my lonely cell, nor should any
raiment softer than sackcloth have come near my seared and blighted
heart!"

"I should think it would get seared, with nothing but sackcloth," put in
the irrepressible little Lady of Eu.

"But what good would all that do, Eva?"

"Good, Beatrice!  What canst thou mean?  I tell thee, I could not have
borne any thing else."

"I don't believe much in thy sackcloth, Eva.  Thou wert making ever such
a fuss the other day because the serge of thy gown touched thy neck and
rubbed it, and Levina ran a ribbon down to keep it off thee."

"Don't be impertinent, Marie.  Of course, in such a case as that, I
could not think of mere inconveniences."

"Well, if I could not think of inconveniences when I was miserable, I
would try to make less fuss over them when I was happy."

"I am not happy, foolish child."

"Why, what's the matter?  Did Sir William look at thee only twenty-nine
times, instead of thirty, when he was here?"

"Thou art the silliest maiden of whom any one ever heard!"

"No, Eva; her match might be found, I think," said Beatrice.

Marie went off into convulsions of laughter, and flung herself on the
rushes to enjoy it with more freedom.

"I wonder which of you two is the funnier!" said she.

"What on earth is there comical about _me_?" exclaimed Eva, the more put
out because Beatrice and Doucebelle were both joining in Marie's
amusement.

"It is of no use to tell thee, Eva," replied Beatrice; "thou wouldst not
be able to see it."

"Can't I see any thing you can?" demanded Eva, irritably.

"Why, no!" said Marie, with a fresh burst: "canst thou see thine own
face?"

"What a silly child, to make such a speech as that!"

"No, Eva," said Beatrice, trying to stifle her laughter, increased by
Marie's witticism: "the child is any thing but silly."

"Well, I think you are all very silly, and I shall not talk to you any
more," retorted Eva, endeavouring to cover her retreat; but she was
answered only by a third explosion from Marie.

Half an hour later, the Countess, entering her bed-chamber, was startled
to find a girl crouched down by the side of the bed, her face hidden in
the coverlet, and her sunny cedar hair flowing over it in disorder.

"Why, what--Magot! my darling Magot! what aileth thee, my white dove?"

Margaret lifted her head when her mother spoke.  She had not been
shedding tears.  Perhaps she might have looked less terribly wan and
woeful if she had done so.

"Pardon me, Lady!  I came here to be alone."

The Countess sat down in the low curule chair beside her bed, and drew
her daughter close.  Margaret laid her head, with a weary sigh, on her
mother's knee, and cowered down again at her feet.

"And what made thee wish to be alone, my rosebud?"

"Something that somebody said."

"Has any one been speaking unkindly to my little one?"

"No, no.  They did not mean to be unkind.  Oh dear no! nothing of the
sort.  But--things sting--when people do not mean it."

The Countess softly stroked the cedar hair.  She hardly understood the
explanation.  Things of that sort did not sting her.  But this she
understood and felt full sympathy with--that her one cherished darling
was in trouble.

"Who was it, Magot?"

"Do not ask me, Lady.  I did not mean to complain of any one.  And
nobody intended to hurt me."

"What did she say?"

"She said,"--something like a sob came here--"that I was one who could
settle to work, and get interested in other things, and forget a lost
love.  But, she said, it would kill her in a month."

"Well, darling?  I began to hope that was true."

"No," came in a very low voice.  It was not a quick, warm denial like
that of Eva, yet one which sounded far more hopelessly conclusive.  "No.
O Mother, no!"

"And thou art still fretting in secret, my dove?"

"I do not know about fretting.  I think that is too energetic a word.
It would be better to say--dying."

"Magot, mine own, my sunbeam!  Do not use such words!"

"It is better to see the truth, Lady.  And that is true.  But I do not
think it will be over in a month."

The Countess could not trust herself to speak.  She went on stroking the
soft hair.

"Father Bruno says that love can kill weak people.  I suppose I am weak.
I feel as if I should be glad when it is all done with."

"When what is done with?" asked the Countess, in a husky tone.

"Living," said the girl.  "This weary round of dressing, eating,
working, talking, and sleeping.  When it is all done, and one may lie
down to sleep and not wake to-morrow,--I feel as if that were the only
thing which would ever make me glad any more."

"My heart!  Dost thou want to leave me?"

"I would have lived, Lady, for your sake, if I could have done.  But I
cannot.  The rosebud that you loved is faded: it cannot give out scent
any more.  It is not me,--me, your Margaret--that works, and talks, and
does all these things.  It is only my body, which cannot die quite so
fast as my soul.  My heart is dead already."

"My treasure!  I will have Master Aristoteles to see to thee.  I really
hoped thou wert getting over it."

"It is of no use trying to keep me," she answered quietly.  "You had
better let me go--Mother."

The Countess's reply was to clap her hands--at that time the usual
method of summoning a servant.  When Levina tapped at the door, instead
of bidding her enter, her mistress spoke through it.

"Tell Master Aristoteles that I would speak with him in this chamber."

The mother and daughter were both very still until the shuffling of the
physician's slippered feet was heard in the passage.  Then the Countess
roused herself and answered the appeal with "Come in."

"My Lady desired my attendance?"

"I did, Master.  I would fain have you examine this child.  She has a
strange fancy, which I should like to have uprooted from her mind.  She
imagines that she is going to die."

"A strange fancy indeed, if it please my Lady.  I see no sign of disease
at all about the damsel.  A little weakness, and low spirits,--no real
complaint whatever.  She might with some advantage wear the fleminum
[Note 1],--the blood seems a little too much in the head: and warm
fomentations would help to restore her strength.  Almond blossoms,
pounded with pearl, might also do something.  But, if it please my
Lady--let my Lady speak."

"I was only going to ask, Master, whether viper broth would be good for
her?"

"A most excellent suggestion, my Lady.  But, I was about to remark, the
physician of Saint Albans hath given me a most precious thing, which
would infallibly restore the damsel, even if she were at the gates of
death.  Three hairs of the beard of the blessed Dominic [Note 2], whom
our holy Father hath but now canonised.  If the damsel were to take one
of these, fasting, in holy water, no influence of the Devil could have
any longer power over her."

"_Ha, jolife_!" cried the Countess, clasping her hands.  "Magot, my
love, this is the very thing.  Thou must take it."

"I will take what you command, Lady."

But there was no enthusiasm in Margaret's voice.

"Then to-morrow morning, Master, do, I beseech you, administer this
precious cordial!"

"Lady, I will do so.  But it would increase the efficacy, if the damsel
would devoutly repeat this evening the Rosary of the holy Virgin, with
twelve Glorias and one hundred Aves."

"Get thee to it, quickly, Magot, my darling, and I will say them with
thee, which will surely be of still more benefit Master, I thank you
inexpressibly!"

And hastily rising, the Countess repaired to her oratory, whither
Margaret followed her.  Father Warner was there already, and he joined
in the prayers, which made them of infallible efficacy in the eyes of
the Countess.

At five o'clock the next morning, in the oratory, the holy hair was duly
administered to the patient.  All the priests were present except Bruno.
Master Aristoteles himself, after high mass, came forward with the
blessed relic,--a long, thick, black hair, immersed in holy water, in a
golden goblet set with pearls.  This Margaret obediently swallowed (of
course exclusive of the goblet); and it is not very surprising that a
fit of coughing succeeded the process.

"Avaunt thee, Satanas!" said Father Warner, making the sign of the cross
in the air above Margaret's head.

Father Nicholas kindly suggested that a little more of the holy water
might be efficacious against the manifest enmity of the foul Fiend.
Master Aristoteles readily assented; and the additional dose calmed the
cough: but probably it did not occur to any one to think whether unholy
water would not have done quite as well.

When they had come out into the bower, the Countess took her daughter in
her arms, and kissed her brow.

"Now, my Magot," said she playfully--it was not much forced, for her
faith was great in the blessed hair--"now, my Magot, thou wilt get well
again.  Thou must!"

Margaret looked up into the loving face above her, and a faint, sad
smile flitted across her lips.

"Think so, dear Lady, if it comfort thee," she said.  "It will not be
for long!"

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  A garment which was supposed to draw the blood downwards from
the brain.

Note 2.  "Hairs of a saint's beard, dipped in holy water, and taken
inwardly," are given by Fosbroke (Encyclopaedia of Antiquities, page
479) in his list of medieval remedies.



CHAPTER THIRTEEN.

FATHER BRUNO'S SERMON.

  "And speak'st thou thus,
  Despairing of the sun that sets to thee,
  And of the earthly love that wanes to thee,
  And of the Heaven that lieth far from thee?
  Peace, peace, fond fool!  One draweth near thy door,
  Whose footprints leave no print across the snow.
  Thy Sun has risen with comfort in His face,
  The smile of Heaven to warm thy frozen heart,
  And bless with saintly hand.  What! is it long
  To wait and far to go?  Thou shalt not go.
  Behold, across the snow to thee He comes,
  Thy Heaven descends, and is it long to wait?
  Thou shalt not wait.  `This night, this night,' He saith,
  `I stand at the door and knock.'"

  _Jean Ingelow_.

Earl Hubert went very pale when his wife told him of the conversation
which she had had with Margaret.  She was his darling, the child of his
old age, and he loved her more dearly than he was himself aware.  But
the blessed hair, and the holy water, were swallowed by him in a
figurative sense, with far more implicit faith than they had been,
physically, by Margaret.  He was quite easy in his mind after that
event.

The Countess was a little less so.  The saintly relic did not weigh
quite so much with her, and the white, still, unchanged face of the girl
weighed more.  With the restless anxiety of alarm only half awake, she
tried to bolster up her own hopes by appeals to every other person.

"Father Nicholas, do you think my daughter looks really ill?"

Father Nicholas, lost at the moment in the Aegean Sea, came slowly back
from "the many-twinkling smile of ocean" to the consideration of the
question referred to him.

"My Lady?  Ah, yes!  The damsel Margaret.  To be sure.  Well,--looking
ill?  I cannot say, Lady, that I have studied the noble damsel's looks.
Perhaps--is she a little paler than she used to be?  Ah, my Lady, a
course of the grand old Greek dramatists,--that would be the thing to
set her up.  She could not fail to be interested and charmed."

The Countess next applied to Father Warner.

"The damsel does look pale, Lady.  What wonder, when she has not
confessed for over a fortnight?  Get her well shriven, and you will see
she will be another maiden."

"She sighs, indeed, my Lady; and I do not think she sleeps well," said
Levina, who was the third authority.  "It strikes me, under my Lady's
pleasure, that she would be the better for a change."

This meant, that Levina was tired of Bury Saint Edmund's.

"Oh, there's nothing the matter with her!" said Eva, testily.  "She
never takes things to heart as I do.  She'll do well enough."

"Lady, I am very uneasy about dear Margaret," was Doucebelle's
contribution.  "I am sure she is ill, and unhappy too.  I only wish I
knew what to do for her."

Beatrice looked up with grave eyes.  "Lady, I would so gladly say No!
But I cannot do it."

The last person interrogated was Bruno; and by the time she came to him,
the Countess was very low-spirited.  His face went grave and sad.

"Lady, it never does good to shut one's eyes to the truth.  It is worse
pain in the end.  Yes: the damsel Margaret is dying."

"Dying!" shrieked the unhappy mother.  "Dying, Father Bruno!  You said
_dying_!"

"Too true, my Lady."

"But what can I do?  How am I to stop it?"

"Ah!" said Bruno, softly, as if to himself.  "There is a `Talitha Cumi'
from the other side too.  The Healer is on that side now.  Lady, He has
called her.  In her face, her voice, her very smile, it is only too
plain that she has heard His voice.  And there is no possibility of
disobeying it, whether it call the living to death, or the dead to
life."

"But how am I to help it?" repeated the poor Countess.

"You cannot help it.  Suffer her to rise and go to Him.  Let us only do
our utmost to make sure that it is to Him she is going."

"Oh, if it be so, would it be possible to have her spared the pains of
Purgatory?  Father, I would think it indeed a light matter to give every
penny and every jewel that I have!"

"Do so, if it will comfort you.  But for her, leave her in His hands
without whom not a sparrow falleth.  Lady, He loves her better than
you."

"Better?  It is not possible!  I would die for her!"

"He has died for her," answered Bruno, softly.  "And He is the Amen, the
Living One for ever: and He hath the keys of Hades and of death.  She
cannot die, Lady, until He bids it who counts every hair upon the head
of every child of His."

"But where will she be?--what will she be?" moaned the poor mother.

"If she be His, she will be where He is, and like Him."

"But He does not need her, and I do!"

"Nay, if He did not, He would not take her.  He loves her too well,
Lady, to deal with this weak and weary lamb as He deals with the strong
sheep of His flock.  He leads them for forty years, it may be, through
the wilderness: He teaches them by pain, sorrow, loneliness, unrest.
But she is too weak for such discipline, and she is to be folded early.
It is far better."

"For her,--well, perhaps--if she can be got past Purgatory.  But for
me!"

"For each of you, what she needs, Lady."

"O Father Bruno, she is mine only one!"

"Lady, can you not trust her in His hands who gave His Only One for her
salvation?"

------------------------------------------------------------------------

One evening about this time, Levina came up with the news that Abraham
of Norwich wished to see the Damoiselle de Malpas.  Her words were civil
enough, but her tone never was when she spoke to Beatrice; and on this
occasion she put an emphasis on the name, which was manifestly not
intended to be flattering.  Beatrice, however, took no notice of it.
Indeed, she was too glad to see Abraham to feel an inclination to
quarrel with the person who announced his arrival in any terms whatever.
She threw aside her work in haste, and ran down into the hall.

"My Belasez, light of mine eyes!" said the old man fervently, as he
folded her in his arms and blessed her.  "Ah, there is not much light
for the old pedlar's eyes now!"

"Dost thou miss me, my father?"

"Miss thee!  Ah, my darling, how little thou knowest.  The sun has gone
down, and the heavens are covered with clouds."

"Was my mother very angry after I went away?"

It was not natural to speak of Licorice by any other name.

"Don't mention it, Belasez!  She beat me with the broom, until
Delecresse interfered and pulled her off.  Then she spat at me, and
cursed me in the name of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, and all the twelve
tribes of Israel.  She threw dirt at my beard, child."

The last expression, as Beatrice well knew, was an Oriental metaphor.

"Is she satisfied now?"

"Satisfied!  What dost thou mean by satisfied?  She gives me all the
sitten [Note 1] porridge.  That is not very satisfying, for one can't
eat much of it.  I break my fast with Moss, when I can."

Beatrice could not help laughing.

"My poor father!  I wish I could just fly in every morning, to make the
porridge for thee."

"Blessed be the memory of the Twelve Patriarchs!  Child, thou wouldst
scarcely escape with whole bones.  If Licorice hated Christians before,
she hates them tenfold now.--Dost thou think, Belasez, that the Lady
lacks anything to-day?  I have one of the sweetest pieces of pale blue
Cyprus that ever was woven, and some exquisite gold Damascene stuffs as
well."

"I am sure, Father, she will like to look at them, and I have little
doubt she will buy."

"How are matters going with thee, child?  Has thy father got leave to
abandon his vows?"

"He hopes to receive it in a few days."

"Well, well!  Matters were better managed in Israel.  Our vows were
always terminable.  And Nazarites did not shut themselves up as if other
men were not to be touched, like unclean beasts.  We always washed
ourselves, too.  There is an old monk at Norwich, that scents the street
whenever he goes up it: and not with otto of roses.  I turn up a side
lane when I see him coming.  Even the Saracens are better than that.  I
never knew any but Christians who thought soap and water came from
Satan."  [Note 2.]

"Well, we all wash ourselves here," said Beatrice, laughing, "unless it
be Father Warner; I will not answer for him."

"This world is a queer place, my Belasez, full of crooked lanes and
crookeder men and women.  Men are bad enough, I believe: but women!--"

Beatrice could guess of what woman Abraham was especially thinking.

"Is Cress come with thee, my father?"

"No--not _here_," answered the old Jew, emphatically.  "And he never
can."

"Why?"

"Belasez, I have a sad tale to tell thee."

"O my father!  Is there anything wrong with Cress?"

It was impossible to recognise Delecresse as uncle instead of brother.

"Ay, child, wrong enough!" said Abraham sadly.

"Is he so ill, my father?"

"Ah, my Belasez, there is a leprosy of the soul, worse than that of the
body.  And there is no priest left in Israel who can purge that!  Child,
hast thou never wondered how Sir Piers de Rievaulx came to know of the
damsel's marriage--she that is the Lady's daughter?"

"Margaret?  I never could tell how it was."

"It was Delecresse who told him."

"Delecresse!"

"Ah, yes--may the God of Israel forgive him!"

"But how did Delecresse know?"

"I fancy he guessed it, partly--and perhaps subtly extracted some avowal
from thee, in a way which thou didst not understand at the time."

"But, Father, I could not have told him, even unwittingly, for I did not
know it myself.  I remember his asking me who Sir Richard was, as we
passed through the hall,--yes, and he said to old Hamon that he owed him
a grudge.  He asked me, too, after that, if Sir Richard were attached to
Margaret."

"What didst thou say?"

"That I thought it might be so; but I did not know."

"Well!  I am thankful thou couldst tell him no more.  I suppose he
pieced things together, and very likely jumped the last yard.  Howbeit,
he did it.  My son, my only one!  If there were an altar yet left in
Israel, it should smoke with a hecatomb of lambs for him."

"All Israelites would not think it wicked, my father.  They think all
Gentiles fair prey."

"What, after they have eaten of their salt?  Child, when the Lady had
been kind to thee, I could not have touched a hair of any head she
loved.  Had the Messiah come that day, and all Gentiles been made our
bond-slaves, I would have besought for her to fall to me, that I might
free her without an instant's suspense."

"Yes, my father, _thou_ wouldst," answered Beatrice, affectionately.
"But I do not think thou ever didst hate Christians as some of our
nation do."

"Child, Belasez! how could I, when the best love of my white dove's
heart had been given to a Christian and a Gentile?  I loved her, more
than thou canst imagine.  But would my love have been true, had I hated
what she loved best?  Where is thy father, my darling?"

Beatrice was just about to say that she could not tell, when she looked
up and saw him.  The greeting between Abraham and Bruno was very cordial
now.  Bruno smiled gravely when he heard of the further exploits of
Licorice with the broom; but a very sad, almost stern, expression came
into his eyes, when he was told the discovery concerning Delecresse.

"Keep it quiet, my father," he said.  "The Lord will repay.  May it be
not in justice, but with His mercy!"

Then Abraham and his pack were had up to the bower, and large purchases
made of Damascene and Cyprus stuffs.  When he went away, Bruno walked
with him across the yard, and as they clasped hands in farewell,
suddenly asked him what he thought of the damsel Margaret.

"Can there be any question?" answered Abraham, pityingly.  "Hath not
Azrael [the Angel of Death] stamped her with his signet?"

"I fear so.  Wilt thou pray for her, my father?"

Abraham looked up in amazement.

"A Christian ask the prayers of a Jew!" exclaimed he.

"Why not?" replied Bruno.  "Were not Christ and all His apostles Jews?
And thou art a good and true man, my father.  The God of Israel heareth
the prayers of the righteous."

"Canst thou account a Jew righteous?--one who believes not in thy
Messiah?"

"I am not so sure of that," said Bruno, his eyes meeting those of
Abraham in full.  "I think thy heart and conscience are convinced, but
thou art afraid to declare it."

Abraham's colour rose a little.

"May Adonai lead us both to His truth!" he replied.

But Bruno noticed that he made no attempt to deny the charge.

Bruno's chief wish now was to get hold of Margaret, and find out the
exact state of her mind.  Without knowing his wish, she helped him by
asking him to hear her confession.  Bruno rose at once.

"Now?" said Margaret, with a little surprise.

"There is no time but now," was the reply.

They went into the oratory, and closed the door on curious ears; and
Margaret poured out the secrets of her restless and weary heart.

"I longed to confess to you, Father, for I fancied that you would
understand me better than the other priests.  You know what love is; I
am not sure that they do: and Father Warner at least thinks it weakness,
if not sin.  And now tell me, have you any balm for such a sorrow as
mine?  Of course it can never be undone; that I know too well.  And I do
not think that any thing could make me live; nor do I wish it.  If I
only knew where it is that I am going!"

"Let the where alone," answered Bruno.  "Daughter, to whom art thou
going?  Is it to a Stranger, or to Him whom thy soul loveth?"

Not unnaturally, she misunderstood the allusion.

"No; he will not necessarily die, because I do."

She was only thinking of Richard.

"My child!" said Bruno, gently, "thou art going to the presence of the
Lord Jesus Christ.  Dost thou know any thing about Him?"

"I know, of course, what the Church teaches."

"Well; but dost thou know what He teaches?  Is He as dear to thee as
thine earthly love?"

"No."  The reply was in a rather shamefaced tone; but there was no
hesitation about it.

"Is He as dear to thee as the Earl thy father?"

"No."

"Is He as dear to thee as any person in this house, whomsoever it be,--
such as thou hast been acquainted with, and accustomed to, all thy
life?"

"Father," said the low, sad voice, "I am afraid you are right.  I do not
know Him."

"Wilt thou not ask Him, then, to reveal Himself to thee?"

"Will He do it, Father?"

"`Will He'!  Has He not been waiting to do it, ever since thou wert
brought to Him in baptism?"

"But He can never fill up this void in my heart!"

"He could, my daughter.  But I am not sure that He will, in this world.
I rather think that He sees how weak thou art, and means to gather thee
early into the warm shelter of His safe and happy fold."

"Father, I feel as if I could not be happy, even in Heaven, if _he_ were
not there.  I can long for the grave, because it will be rest and
silence.  But for active happiness, such as I suppose they have in
Heaven,--Father, I do not want that; I could not bear it.  I would
rather stay on earth--where Richard is."

"Poor child!" said Bruno half involuntarily.  "My daughter, it is very
natural.  It must be so.  `Where is thy treasure, there is also thine
heart.'"

"And," the low voice went on, "if I could know that he had given over
loving me, I fancy it would be easier to go."

Bruno thought it best rather to raise her thoughts out of that channel
than to encourage them to flow in it.

"My child, Christ has not given over loving thee."

"That does not seem real, like the other.  And, O Father!  He is not
Richard!"

"Dear child, it is far more real: but thine heart is too sore to suffer
thine eyes to see it.  Dost thou not know that our Lord is saying to
thee in this very sorrow, `Come unto Me, and I will give thee rest'?"

"It would be rest, if He would give me Richard," she said.  "There is
but that one thing for me in all the world."

Bruno perceived that this patient required not the plaster, as he had
supposed, but the probe.  Her heart was not merely sore; it was
rebellious.  She was hardening herself against God.

"No, my daughter; thou art not ready for rest.  There can be no peace
between the King and an unpardoned rebel.  Thou art that, Margaret de
Burgh.  Lay down thine arms, and put thyself in the King's mercy."

"Father!" said the girl, in a voice which was a mixture of surprise and
alarm.

"Child, He giveth not account of any of His matters.  Unconditional
submission is what He requires of His prisoners.  Thou wouldst fain
dictate terms to thy Sovereign: it cannot be.  Thou must come into His
terms, if there is to be any peace between Him and thee.  Yet even for
thee there is a message of love.  He is grieved at the hardness of thine
heart.  Listen to His voice,--`It is hard _for thee_ to kick against the
pricks.'  It is for thy sake that He would have thee come back to thine
allegiance."

The answer was scarcely what he expected.

"Father, it is of no use to talk to me.  I hear what you say, of course;
but it does me no good.  My heart is numb."

"Thou art right," gently replied Bruno.  "The south wind must blow upon
the garden, ere the spices can flow out.  Ask the Lord--I will ask Him
also--to pour on thee the gift of the Holy Ghost."

"How many Paters?" said the girl in a weary tone.  "One will do, my
daughter, if thou wilt put thy whole heart into it."

"I can put my heart into nothing."

"Then say to Him this only--`Lord, I bring Thee a dead heart, that Thou
mayest give it life.'"

She said the words after him, mechanically, like a child repeating a
lesson.  "How long will it take?"

"He knows--not I."

"But suppose I die first?"

"The Lord will not let thee die unsaved, if thou hast a sincere wish for
salvation.  He wants it more than thou."

"He wants it!" repeated Margaret wonderingly.  "He wants it.  He wants
thee.  Did He die for thee, child, that He should let thee go lightly?
Thou art as precious in His sight as if the world held none beside
thee."

"I did not think I was that to any one--except my parents and--and
Richard."

"Thou art that, incomparably more than to any of them, to the Lord
Jesus."

The momentary exhibition of feeling was past.

"Well!" she said, with a dreary sigh.  "It may be so.  But I cannot care
about it."

Bruno's answer was not addressed to Margaret.

"Lord, care about it for her!  Breathe upon this dead, that she may
live!  Save her in spite of herself!"

There was a slight pause, and then Bruno quietly gave the absolution,
and the confession was over.

The next Sunday, there was the unwonted occurrence of a sermon after
vespers.  Sermons were not fashionable at that time.  When preached at
all, they were usually extremely dry scholastic disquisitions.  Father
Warner had given two during his abode at the Castle: and both were
concerning the duty of implicit obedience to the Church.  Father
Nicholas had preached about a dozen; some on the virtues--dreary
classical essays; three concerning the angels; and one (on a Good
Friday) which was a series of fervent declamations on the Passion.

But this time it was Bruno who preached; and on a very different topic
from any mentioned above.  His clear, ringing voice was in itself a much
more interesting sound than Father Nicholas's drowsy monotone, or Father
Warner's dry staccato.  He at least was interested in his subject; no
one could doubt that.  As soon as the last note of the last chant had
died away, Bruno came forward to the steps of the altar.  He had given
due notice of his intention beforehand, and every one (with Beatrice in
particular) was prepared to listen to him.

The text itself--to hearers unfamiliar with the letter of Scripture--was
rather a startling one.

"`O all ye that pass by the way, hearken and see if there be sorrow like
unto my sorrow, wherewith the Lord hath trodden me as in the wine-press,
in the day of the wrath of His anger.'"

Margaret looked up quickly.  This seemed to her the very language of her
own heart.  She at least was likely to be attentive.

Perhaps no medieval preacher except Bruno de Malpas would even have
thought of alluding to the literal and primary meaning of the words.
From the first moment of their joint existence, Jerusalem and Rome have
been enemies and rivals.  Not content with, so far as in her lay,
blotting out the very name of Israel from under heaven, Rome has calmly
arrogated to herself--without even offering proof of it--that right to
the promises made to the fathers, which, Saint Paul tells us, belongs in
a higher and richer sense to the invisible Church of Christ than to the
literal and visible Israel.  But Rome goes further than the Apostle: for
in her anxiety to claim the higher sense for herself, she denies the
lower altogether.  No Romanist will hear with patience of any national
restoration of Israel.  And whether the Anglo-Israelite theory be true
or false, it is certainly, as a theory, exceedingly unpalatable to Rome.

With respect, moreover, to this particular passage, it had become so
customary to refer it to the sufferings of Christ, that its original
application to the destruction of Jerusalem had been almost forgotten.

But here, Bruno's Jewish proclivities stood him in good stead.  He
delighted Beatrice by fully stating the original reference of the
passage.  But then he went on to say that it was no longer applicable to
the Babylonish captivity.  Since that time, there had been another
sorrow to which the sufferings of Israel were not to be compared--to
which no affliction ever suffered by humanity could be comparable for a
moment.  He told them, in words that burned, of that three hours'
darkness that might be felt--of that "Eli, Eli, lama sabachthani" into
which was more than concentrated every cry of human anguish since the
beginning of the world.  And then he looked, as it were, straight into
the heart's depths of every one of his hearers, and he said to each one
of those hearts, "This was your doing!"  He told them that for every sin
of every one among them, that Sacrifice was a sufficient atonement: and
that if for any one the atonement was not efficacious, that was not
Christ's fault, but his own.  There was room at the marriage-supper for
every pauper straying on the high-way; and if one of them were not
there, it would be because he had refused the invitation.

Then Bruno turned to the other half of his subject, and remarked that
every man and woman was tempted to think that there was no sorrow like
to his sorrow.  Yet there was a balm for all sorrow: but it was only to
be had at one place.  The bridge which had been strong enough to bear
the weight of Christ and His cross, carrying with Him all the sins and
sorrows of all the world for ever, would be strong enough to bear any
sorrow of theirs.  But so long as man persisted in saying, "_My_ will be
done," he must not imagine that God would waste mercy in helping him.
"Not my will, but Thine," must always precede the sending of the
strengthening angel.  And lastly, he reminded them that God sent grief
to them for their own sakes.  It was not for His sake.  It gave Him no
pleasure; nay, it grieved Him, when He had to afflict the children of
men.  It was the medicine without which they could not recover health:
and He always gave the right remedy, in the right quantities, and at the
right time.

"And now," said Bruno at last, "ye into whose hands the Great Physician
hath put this wholesome yet bitter cup,--how are ye going to treat it?
Will ye dash it down, and say, `I will have none of this remedy?'  For
the end of that is death, the death eternal.  Will ye drink it, only
because ye have no choice, with a wry face and a bitter tongue,
blaspheming the hand that gives it?  It will do you no good then; it
will work for evil.  Or will ye take it meekly, with thanksgiving on
your lips, though there be tears in your eyes, knowing that His will is
better than yours, and that He who bore for you the pangs that no man
can know, is not likely to give you any bitterness that He can spare
you?  Trust me, the thanksgivings that God loves best, are those sobbed
from lips that cannot keep still for sorrow.

"And, brethren, there is no sorrow in Heaven.  `Death there shall be no
more, neither sorrow, nor crying, nor pain shall be any more.'  [Note
3.]  We who are Christ's shall be there before long."

He ended thus, almost abruptly.

The chapel was empty, and the congregation were critical.  Earl Hubert
thought that Father Bruno had a good flow of language, and could preach
an excellent discourse.  The Countess would have preferred a different
subject: it was so melancholy!  Sir John thought it a pity that man had
been wasted on the Church.  Hawise supposed that he had said just what
was proper.  Beatrice wished he would preach every day.  Eva was
astonished at her; did she really like to listen to such dolorous stuff
as that?  Doucebelle wondered that any one should think it dolorous; she
had enjoyed it very much.  Marie confessed to having dropped asleep, and
dreamed that Father Bruno gave her a box of bonbons.

There was one of them who said nothing, because her heart was too full
for speech.  But the south wind had begun to blow upon the garden.  On
that lonely and weary heart God had looked in His mercy that day, and
had said, "Live!"

Too late for earthly life.  That was sapped at the root.  God knew that
His best kindness to Margaret de Burgh was that He should take her away
from the evil to come.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  Burnt to the pan: a variety of porridge which few would wish to
taste twice.

Note 2.  "These monks imagined that holiness was often proportioned to a
saint's filthiness--Saint Francis discovered, by certain experience,
that the devils... were animated by clean clothing to tempt and seduce
the wearers; and one of their heroes declares that the purest souls are
in the dirtiest bodies...  Brother Juniper was a gentleman perfectly
pious, on this principle; indeed, so great was his merit in this species
of mortification, that a brother declared he could always nose Brother
Juniper when within a mile of the monastery, provided the wind were at
the due point."--Disraeli's _Curiosities of Literature_, Volume One,
page 92.

Note 3.  All quotations from Scripture in this story are of course taken
from the Vulgate, except those made by Jews.



CHAPTER FOURTEEN.

EVIL TIDINGS.

  "Too tired for rapture, scarce I reach and cling
  To One that standeth by with outstretched hand;
  Too tired to hold Him, if He hold not me:
  Too tired to long but for one heavenly thing,--
  Rest for the weary, in the Promised Land."

Permission for Bruno to lay aside the habit of Saint Augustine reached
Bury Castle very soon after his sermon.  And with it came two other
items of news,--the one, that Bishop Grosteste offered him a rich living
in his diocese; the other, that the Bishop's life had been attempted by
poison.  It was not to be wondered at in the least, since Grosteste had
coolly declared the reigning Pope Innocent to be an exact counterpart of
Anti-Christ (for which the head of the Church rewarded him by terming
him a wicked old dotard), and his attachment to monachism in general was
never allowed to stand in the way of the sternest rebuke to disorderly
monks in particular.  He also presumed to object to his clergy having
constant recourse to Jewish money-lenders, and especially interfered
with their favourite amusement of amateur theatricals, which he was so
unreasonable as to think unbecoming the clerical office.

Bruno hastened to the Countess with the news, accompanying it by warm
thanks for the shelter afforded to himself and his daughter, and
informing her that he would no longer burden her with either.  But she
looked very grave.

"Father Bruno," she said, "I have a boon to ask."

"Ask it freely, Lady.  I am bound to you in all ways."

"Then I beg that you and Beatrice will continue here, so long--_ha,
chetife_!--so long as my child lives."

Father Bruno gravely assented.  He knew too well that would not be long.
Yet it proved longer than either of them anticipated.

Stormy times were at hand.  The Papal Legate had effected between Earl
Hubert and the Bishop of Winchester a reconciliation which resembled a
quiescent volcano; but Hubert was put into a position of sore peril by
his royal brother-in-law of Scotland, who coolly sent an embassy to King
Henry, demanding as his right that the three northernmost counties of
England should be peaceably resigned to him.  After putting him off for
a time by an evasive message, King Henry consented to meet Alexander at
York, and discuss the questions on which they differed.  His Britannic
Majesty was still vexing his nobles by the favour he showed to
foreigners.  At this time he demanded a subsidy of one-thirtieth of all
the property in the kingdom, which they were by no means inclined to
give him.  As a sop to Cerberus, the King promised thenceforth to abide
by the advice of his native nobility, and the subsidy was voted.  But
his next step was to invite his father-in-law, the Count of Provence,
and to shower upon him the gold so unwillingly granted.  The nobles were
more angry than ever, and the King's own brother, Richard Earl of
Cornwall, was the first to remonstrate.  Then Archbishop Edmund of
Canterbury took a journey to Rome, and declined to return, even when
recalled by the Legate.  But the grand event of that year was the final
disruption of Christendom.  The Greek Church had many a time quarrelled
with the Latin, chiefly on two heads,--the worship of images and the
assumption of universal primacy.  On the first count they differed with
very little distinction, since the Greek Church allowed the full worship
of pictures, but anathematised every body who paid reverence to
statues,--a rather odd state of things to Protestant eyes.  Once
already, the Eastern Church had seceded, but the quarrel was patched up
again.  But after the secession of 1237, there was never to be peace
between East and West again.

The new year came in with a royal marriage.  There were curious
circumstances attending it, for the parties married in spite of the
King, who was obliged to give away the bride, his sister Alianora,
"right sore against his will:" and though the bride had taken the vow of
perpetual widowhood, [Note 1] they did not trouble themselves about a
Papal dispensation till they had been married for some weeks.  The
bridegroom was the young Frenchman, Sir Simon de Montfort, whom the King
at last came to fear more than thunder and lightning.  The English
nobility were extremely displeased, for they considered that the
Princess had been married beneath her dignity; but since from first to
last she had had her own wilful way, it was rather unreasonable in the
nobles to vent their wrath upon the King.  They rose against him
furiously, headed by his own brother, and by the husband of the Princess
Marjory of Scotland, till at last the royal standard was deserted by all
but one man,--that true and loyal patriot, Hubert, Earl of Kent,--the
man whom no oppression could alienate from the Throne, and whom no
cruelty could silence when he thought England in danger.  But now his
prestige was on the wane.  The nobles were not afraid of him, on account
of his old age, his wisdom, and a vow which he had taken never to bear
arms again.  In vain King Henry appealed privately to every peer, asking
if his fidelity might be relied on.  From every side defiant messages
came back.  The citizens of London, as their wont was, were
exceptionally disloyal.  Then he sent the Legate to his brother, urging
peace.  Cornwall refused to listen.  At last, driven into a corner, the
King begged for time, and it was granted him, until the first Monday in
Lent.  When that day came, the nobles assembled in grand force at
London, to come to a very lame and impotent conclusion.  Earl Richard of
Cornwall, the King's brother, suddenly announced that he and his new
brother-in-law, Montfort, had effected a complete reconciliation.  The
other nobles were very angry at the desertion of their leader, and
accused him, perhaps not untruly, of having been bribed into this
conduct: for Cornwall was quite as extravagant, and nearly as
acquisitive, as his royal brother.  Just at this time died Joan, Queen
of Scotland, the eldest sister of King Henry, of rapid decline, while on
her way home from England; and her death was quickly followed by that of
Hubert's great enemy, the Bishop of Winchester.  The filling up of the
vacant see caused one of the frequent struggles between England and
Rome.  The Chapter of Winchester wished to have the Bishop of
Chichester: the King was determined to appoint the Queen's uncle,
Guglielmo of Savoy; and, as he often did to gain his ends, Henry sided
with Rome against his own people.

The disruption between the Greek and Latin Churches being now an
accomplished fact, the Archbishop of Antioch went the length of
excommunicating the Pope and the whole Roman Church, asserting that if
there were to be a supreme Pontiff, he had the better claim to the
title.  This event caused a disruption on a small scale in Margaret's
bower, where Beatrice scandalised the fair community by wanting to know
why the Pope should not be excommunicated if he deserved it.

"Excommunicate the head of the Church!" said Hawise, in a horrified
tone.

"Well, but here are two Churches," persisted Beatrice.  "If the Pope can
excommunicate the Archbishop, what is to prevent the Archbishop from
excommunicating the Pope?"

"Poor creature!" said Hawise pityingly.

"The Eastern schism is no Church!" added Eva.

"Oh, I do wish some of you would tell me what you mean by a Church!"
exclaimed Beatrice, earnestly, laying down her work.  "What makes one
thing a Church, and another a schism?"

But that was just what nobody could tell her.  Hawise leaped the chasm
deftly by declaring it an improper question.  Eva said, "_Si bete_!" and
declined to say more.

"Well, I may be a fool," said Beatrice bluntly: "but I do not think you
are much better if you cannot tell me."

"Of course I could tell thee, if I chose!" answered Eva, with lofty
scorn.

"Then why dost thou not?" was the unanswerable reply.

Eva did not deign to respond.  But when Bruno next appeared, Beatrice
put her question.

"The Church is what Christ builds on Himself: a schism is bred in man's
brain, contrary to holy Scripture."

In saying which, Bruno only quoted Bishop Grosteste.

"But, seeing men are fallible, how then can any human system claim to be
at all times The Church?" asked Beatrice.

"The true Church is not a human system at all," said he.

"Father, Beatrice actually fancies that the Archbishop of Antioch could
excommunicate the holy Father!" observed Hawise in tones of horror.

"I suppose any authority can excommunicate those below him, in the
Church visible," said Bruno, calmly: "in the invisible Jerusalem above,
which is the mother of us all, none excommunicates but God.  `Every
branch in Me, not fruit-bearing, He taketh it away.'  My daughters, it
would do us more good to bear that in mind, than to blame either the
Pope or the Archbishop."

And he walked away, as was his wont when he had delivered his sentence.

That afternoon, the Countess sent for Beatrice and Doucebelle to her own
bower.  They found her seated by the window, with unusually idle hands,
and an expression of sore disturbance on her fair, serene face.

"There is bad news come, my damsels," she said, when the girls had made
their courtesies.  "And I do not know how to tell my Magot.  Perhaps one
of you might manage it better than I could.  And she had better be told,
for she is sure to hear it in some way, and I would fain spare the child
all I can."

"About Sir Richard the Earl, Lady?" asked Beatrice.

"Yes, of course.  He is married, Beatrice."

"To whom, Lady?" asked Beatrice, calmly but Doucebelle uttered an
ejaculation under her breath.

"To Maud, daughter of Sir John de Lacy, the Earl of Lincoln.  It is no
fault of his, poor boy!  The Lord King would have it so.  And the King
has made a good thing of it, for I hear that the Earl of Lincoln has
given him above three thousand gold pennies to have the marriage, and
has remitted a debt of thirteen hundred more.  A good thing for him!--
and it may be quite as well for Richard.  But my poor child!  I cannot
understand how it is that she does not rouse up and forget her
disappointment.  It is very strange."

It was very strange, to the mother who loved Margaret so dearly, and yet
understood her so little.  But Doucebelle silently thought that any
thing else would have been yet stranger.

"And you would have us tell her, Lady?"

"It would be as well.  Really, I cannot!"

The substratum was showing itself for a moment in the character of the
Countess.

"Dulcie would do it better than I," said Beatrice, "I am a bad hand at
beating about the bush.  I might do it too bluntly."

"Then, Dulcie, do tell her!" pleaded the Countess.

"Very well, Lady."  But all Doucebelle's unselfishness did not prevent
her from feeling that she would almost rather have had any thing else to
do.

She went back slowly to Margaret's bower, tenanted at that moment by no
one but its owner.  Margaret looked up as Doucebelle entered, and read
her face as easily as possible.

"Evil tidings!" she said, quietly enough.  "For thee, or for me,
Dulcie?"

Doucebelle came and knelt beside her.

"For me, then!"  Margaret's voice trembled a little.  "Go on, Dulcie!
Richard--"

She could imagine no evil tidings except as associated with him.

Doucebelle conquered her unwillingness to speak, by a strong effort.

"Yes, dear Margaret, it is about him.  The--"

"Is he dead?" asked Margaret, hurriedly.

"No."

"I thought, if it had been that,"--she hesitated.

"Margaret, didst thou not expect something more to happen?"

"Something--what?  I see!" and her tone changed.  "It is marriage."

"Yes, Sir Richard is married to--"

"No!  Don't tell me to whom.  I am afraid I should hate her.  And I do
not want to do that."

Doucebelle was silent.

"Was it his doing," asked Margaret in a low voice, "or did the Lord King
order it?"

"Oh, it was the Lord King's doing, entirely, the Lady says."

"O Dulcie!  I ought to wish it were his, because there would be more
likelihood of his being happy: but I cannot--I cannot!"

"My poor Margaret, I do not wonder!" answered Doucebelle tenderly.

"Is it very wicked," added Margaret, in a voice of deep pain, "not to be
able to wish him to be happy, without me?  It is so hard, Dulcie!  To be
shut out from the warmth and the sunlight, and to see some one else let
in!  I suppose that is a selfish feeling.  But it is so hard!"

"My poor darling!" was all that Doucebelle could say.

"Father Bruno said, that so long as we kept saying, `My will be done,'
we must not expect God to comfort us.  Yet how are we to give over?  O
Dulcie, I thought I was beginning to submit, and this has stirred all up
again.  My heart cries out and says, `This shall not be!  I will not
have it so!'  And if God will have it so!--How am I to learn to bend my
will to His?"

Neither of the girls had heard any one enter, and they were a little
startled when a third voice replied--

"None but Himself can teach thee that, my daughter.  If thou canst not
yet give Him thy will, ask Him to take it in spite of thee."

"I have done that, already, Father Bruno."

"Then thou mayest rest assured that He will do all that is lacking."

That night, Bruno said to Beatrice,--"That poor, dear child!  I am sure
God is teaching her.  But to-day's news has driven another nail into her
coffin."

Would it have been easier, or harder, if the veil could have been lifted
which hid from Margaret the interior of Gloucester Castle?  To the eyes
of the world outside, the young Earl behaved like any other bridegroom.
He brought the Lady Maud to his home, placed her in sumptuous
apartments, surrounded her with obsequious attendants, provided her with
all the comforts and luxuries of life: but there his attentions ended.
For four years his step never crossed the threshold of the tower where
she resided, and they met only on ceremonial occasions.  Wife she never
was to him, until for twelve months the cold stones of Westminster Abbey
had lain over the fair head of his Margaret, the one love of his tried
and faithful heart.

Having now completed the wreck of these two young lives, His Majesty
considerately intimated to Richard de Clare, that in return for the
unusual favours which had been showered upon him, he only asked of him
to feel supremely happy, and to be devoted to his royal service for the
term of his natural life.

Only!

How often it is the case that we imagine our friends to be blessing us
with every fibre of their hearts, when it is all that they can do to
pray for grace to enable them to forgive us!

Not that Richard did any thing of the kind.  So far from it, that he
registered a vow in Heaven, that if ever the power to do it should fall
into his hands, he would repay that debt an hundredfold.

The two chaplains of the Earl had shown no interest whatever in Margaret
and her troubles.  Father Warner despised all human affections of
whatever kind, with the intensity of a nature at once cold and narrow.
Father Nicholas was of a far kindlier disposition, but he was completely
engrossed with another subject.  Alchemy was reviving.  The endless
search for the philosopher's stone, the elixir of life, and other
equally desirable and unattainable objects, had once more begun to
engage the energies of scientific men.  The real end which they were
approaching was the invention of gunpowder, which can hardly be termed a
blessing to the world at large.  But Father Nicholas fell into the
snare, and was soon absolutely convinced that only one ingredient was
wanting to enable him to discover the elixir of life.  That one
ingredient, of priceless value, remains undiscovered in the nineteenth
century.

Yet one thing must be said for these medieval philosophers,--that except
in the way of spending money, they injured none but themselves.  Their
search for the secret of life did not involve the wanton torture of
helpless creatures, nor did their boasted knowledge lead them to the
idiotic conclusion that they were the descendants of a jelly-fish.

Oh, this much-extolled, wise, learned, supercilious Nineteenth Century!
Is it so very much the superior of all its predecessors, as it
complacently assumes to be?

King Alexander of Scotland married his second wife in the May of 1239,
to the great satisfaction of his sisters.  The Countess of Kent thought
that such news as this really ought to make Margaret cheer up: and she
was rather perplexed (which Doucebelle was not by any means) at the
discovery that all the gossip on that subject seemed only to increase
her sadness.  An eclipse of the sun, which occurred on the third of
June, alarmed the Countess considerably.  Some dreadful news might
reasonably be expected after that.  But no worse occurrence (from her
point of view) happened than the birth of a Prince--afterwards to be
Edward the First, who has been termed "the greatest of all the
Plantagenets."

The occasion of the royal christening was eagerly seized upon, as a
delightful expedient for the replenishing of his exhausted treasury, by
the King who might not inappropriately be termed the least of the
Plantagenets.  Messengers were sent with tidings of the auspicious event
to all the peers, and if the gifts with which they returned laden were
not of the costliest description, King Henry dismissed them in disgrace.
"God gave us this child," exclaimed a blunt Norman noble, "but the King
sells him to us!"

Four days after the Prince's birth came another event, which to one at
least in Bury Castle, was enough to account for any portentous eclipse.
The Countess found Beatrice drowned in tears.

"Beatrice!--my dear maiden, what aileth thee?  I have scarcely ever seen
thee shed tears before."

The girl answered by a passionate gesture.

"`Oh that mine head were waters, and mine eyes a fountain of tears, that
I might weep day and night for the slain of the daughter of my people!'"

"_Ha, chetife_!--what is the matter?"

"Lady, there has been an awful slaughter of my people."  And she stood
up and flung up her hands towards heaven, in a manner which seemed to
the Countess worthy of some classic prophetess.  "`Remember, O Adonai,
what is come upon us; consider, and behold our reproach!'  `O God, why
hast Thou cast us off for ever? why doth Thine anger smoke against the
sheep of Thy pasture?  We see not our signs: there is no more any
prophet.'  `Arise, O Adonai, judge the earth! for Thou shalt inherit all
nations.'"

The Countess stood mute before this unparalleled outburst.  She could
not comprehend it.

"My child, I do not understand," she said, kindly enough.  "Has some
relative of thine been murdered?  How shocking!"

"Are not all my people kindred of mine?" exclaimed Beatrice,
passionately.

"Dost thou mean the massacre of the Jews in London?" said the Countess,
as the truth suddenly flashed upon her.  "Oh yes, I did hear of some
such dreadful affair.  But, my dear, remember, thou art now a De Malpas.
Thou shouldst try to forget thine unfortunate connection with that low
race.  They are not thy people any longer."

Beatrice looked up, with flashing eyes from which some stronger feeling
than sorrow had suddenly driven back the tears.

"`If I forget thee, O Jerusalem, let my right hand forget her cunning!'
Lady, thou canst not fathom the heart of a Jew.  No Christian can.  We
are brethren for ever.  And you call my nationality unfortunate, and
low!  Know that I look upon that half of my blood as the King does upon
his crown,--yea, as the Lord dees upon His people!  `We are Thine; Thou
never barest rule over them; they were not called by Thy name.'  But you
do not understand, Lady."

"No,--it is very strange," replied the Countess, in a dubious tone.
"Jews do not seem to understand their position.  It is odd.  But dry
thine eyes, my dear child; thou wilt make thyself ill.  And really--"

The Countess was too kind to finish the sentence.  But Beatrice could
guess that she thought there was really nothing to weep over in the
massacre of a few scores of Jews.  She found little sympathy among the
younger members of the family party.  Margaret said she was sorry, but
it was evidently for the fact that her friend was in trouble, not for
the event over which she was sorrowing.  Eva openly expressed profound
scorn of both the Jews and the sorrow.

Marie wanted to know if some friend of Beatrice were among the slain:
because, if not, why should she care any thing about it?  Doucebelle
alone seemed capable of a little sympathy.

But before the evening was over, Beatrice found there was one Christian
who could enter into all her feelings.  She was slowly crossing the
ante-chamber in the twilight, when she found herself intercepted and
drawn into Bruno's arms.

"My darling!" he said, tenderly.  "I am sent to thee with heavy
tidings."

Poor Beatrice laid her tired head on her father's breast, with the
feeling that she had one friend left in the world.

"I know it, dear Father.  But it is such a comfort that you feel it with
me."

"There are not many who will, I can guess," answered Bruno.  "But, my
child, I am afraid thou dost not know all."

"Father!--what is it?" asked Beatrice, fearfully.

"One has fallen in that massacre, very dear to thee and me, my
daughter."

"Delecresse?"  She thought him the most likely to be in London of any of
the family.

"No.  Delecresse is safe, so far as I know."

"Is it Uncle Moss?--or Levi my cousin?"

"Beatrice, it is Abraham the son of Ursel, the father of us all."

The low cry of utter desolation which broke from the girl's lips was
pitiful to hear.

"`My father, my father! the chariot of Israel, and the horsemen
thereof!'"

Bruno let her weep passionately, until the first burst of grief was
over.  Then he said, gently, "Be comforted, my Beatrice.  I believe that
he sleeps in Jesus, and that God shall bring him with Him."

"He was not baptised?" asked Beatrice, in some surprise that Bruno
should think so.

"He was ready for it.  He had spoken to a friend of mine--one Friar
Saher de Kilvingholme--on the subject.  And the Lord would not refuse to
receive him because his brow had not been touched by water, when He had
baptised him with the Holy Ghost and with fire."

Perhaps scarcely any priest then living, Bruno excepted, would have
ventured so far as to say that.

"Oh, this is a weary world!" sighed Beatrice, drearily.

"It is not the only one," replied her father.

"It seems as if we were born only to die!"

"Nay, my child.  We were born to live for ever.  Those have death who
choose it."

"A great many seem to choose it."

"A great many," said Bruno, sadly.

"Father," said Beatrice, after a short silence, "as a man grows older
and wiser, do you think that he comes to understand any better the
reason of the dark doings of Providence?  Can you see any light upon
them, which you did not of old?"

"No, my child, I think not," was Bruno's answer.  "If any thing, I
should say they grow darker.  But we learn to trust, Beatrice.  It is
not less dark when the child puts his hand confidingly in that of his
father; but his mind is the lighter for it.  We come to know our Father
better; we learn to trust and wait.  `What I do, thou knowest not now:
but thou shalt know hereafter.'  And He has told us that in that land
where we are to know even as we are known, we shall be satisfied.
Satisfied with His dealings, then: let us be satisfied with Him, here
and now."

"It is dark!" said Beatrice, with a sob.

"`The morning cometh,'" replied Bruno.  "And `in the morning is
gladness.'"

Beatrice stood still and silent for some minutes, only a slight sob now
and then showing the storm through which she had passed.  At last, in a
low, troubled voice, she said--

"There is no one to call me Belasez now!"

Bruno clasped her closer.

"My darling!" he said, "so long as the Lord spares us to each other,
thou wilt always be _belle assez_ for me!"

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  She was the young widow of William, Earl of Pembroke, the
eldest brother of the husband of Marjory of Scotland.



CHAPTER FIFTEEN.

AT LAST.

  "Joy for the freed one!  She might not stay
  When the crown had fallen from her life away:
  She might not linger, a weary thing,
  A dove with no home for its broken wing,
  Thrown on the harshness of alien skies,
  That know not its own land's melodies.
  From the long heart-withering early gone,
  She hath lived--she hath loved--her task is done!"

  _Felicia Hemans_.

"Now, Sir John de Averenches, what on earth dost _thou_ want?"

"Is there no room, Damsel?"

"Room!  There is room enough for thee, I dare say," replied Eva, rather
contemptuously.  She looked down on Sir John supremely for four reasons,
which in her own eyes at least were excellent ones.  First, he was
rather short; secondly, he was very silent; thirdly, he was not
particularly handsome; and lastly (and of most import), he had remained
proof against all Eva's attractions.

"I thank thee," was all he said now; and he walked into Margaret's
bower, where he took a seat on the extreme end of the settle, and never
said a word to any body whilst he stayed.

"The absurd creature!" exclaimed Eva, when he was gone.  "What an
absolute ass he is!  He has not an idea in his head."

"Oh, I beg thy pardon, Eva," interposed Marie, rather warmly.  "He's
plenty of ideas.  He'll talk if one talks to him.  Thou never dost."

"He is clever enough to please thee, very likely!" was the rather
snappish answer.

From that evening, Sir John de Averenches took to frequenting the bower
occasionally, much to the annoyance of Eva, until the happy thought
struck her that she might have captivated him at last.  Mentally binding
him to her chariot wheels, she made no further objection, but on the
contrary, became so amiable that the shrewd little Marie noticed the
alteration.

"Well, Eva is queer!" said that acute young lady.  "She goes into the
sulks if Sir William de Cantilupe so much as looks at any body; but she
does not care how many people she looks at!  I think she should be
jealous on both sides!"

Eva's amenities, however, seemed to have no more effect on Sir John than
her displeasure.  Night after night, there he sat, never speaking to any
one, and apparently not noticing one more than another.

"He's going out of his mind," suggested Marie.

"Not he!" said Eva.  "He's none to go out of!"

The mystery was left unsolved, except by Bruno, who fancied that he
guessed its meaning; but since the clue was one which he preferred not
to pursue, he discreetly left matters to shape themselves, or rather, to
be shaped by Providence, when the time should come.

That was a dreary winter altogether.  The King had openly insulted his
sister and Montfort, when they made their appearance at the ceremony of
the Queen's "up-rising;" [Churching] and they had left England,
pocketing the affront, but as concerned Montfort, by no means forgetting
it.

The Pope made further encroachments on the liberties of the Church of
England, by sending over a horde of Italians to fill vacant benefices.
The nobles blazed out into open wrath "that the Pope, through avarice,
should deprive them of their ancient right to the patronage of livings!"
They were headed, as usual, by the King's brother, Richard Earl of
Cornwall, who seems to have been not a true, living Christian (as there
is reason to believe his son was), but simply a political opponent of
the aggressions of Rome.  The citizens of London were about equally
disgusted with the King, who at this time received a visit from the
Queen's uncle, Tomaso of Savoy, and in his delight, His Majesty
commanded his loyal and grumbling subjects to remove all dirt from the
streets, and to meet the Count in gala clothing, and with horses
handsomely accoutred.

The hint thrown out by Levina had not been lost on the Countess.  She
thought a complete change might do good to the fading flower which was
only too patently withering on its stem: and at her instance the whole
household removed to Westminster at the beginning of this winter.  They
had hardly settled down in their new abode when a fresh storm broke on
the now aged head of Earl Hubert.

Once more, all the old, worn-out charges were trumped up, including even
that by which the Princess Margaret's name had been so cruelly aspersed.
A flash of the early fire of the old man blazed forth when the
accusation was made.

"I was never a traitor to you, nor to your father!" said Hubert de
Burgh, facing his ungrateful King and pupil of long ago: "If I had been,
under God, you would never have been here!"

It was true, and Henry knew it, best of all men.

The King, in the fulness of his compassionate grace, was pleased to let
the Earl off very lightly.  The sentence passed was, that he should only
resign the four most valuable castles that he had.  This, of course, was
not because Hubert was guilty, but because His Majesty was covetous.
Chateau Blanc, Grosmond, Skenefrith, and Hatfield, were given up to the
Crown.  Hubert bore it, we are told, very quietly and patiently.  His
own time could not be long now, for he was at least seventy; and the
Benjamin of his love was dying of a broken heart.

King Henry himself was not without sorrow, for about All Saints' Day,
Guglielmo of Savoy, the beloved uncle who had moulded him like wax, died
rather suddenly at Viterbo.  So grieved was the King, that he tore his
royal mantle from his shoulders, and flung it into the fire.  With that
sudden and passionate reaction to the other side, often seen in weak
natures, he now threw himself into the arms of the Predicants and
Minorites--until he set up a new favourite, who was not long in
appearing.

Before the winter was over, a second sorrow fell upon Richard de Clare,
in the death of his mother, Isabel, wife of the King's brother.
Cornwall grieved bitterly both for the loss of his wife and for the
miserable state into which England was sinking; and declaring that he
loved his country so much, that he could not bear to stay and see it go
to ruin, he prepared to head a fresh crusade.  Perhaps it did not occur
to him that love and patriotism would have been shown better by staying
at home and trying to keep his country from going to ruin.  That was
reserved for another Richard--the young Earl of Gloucester.

Another comet, and a violent hurricane, in the spring, made the augurs
shake their heads and prophesy worse calamities than ever.  There was a
fresh one on the way, in the shape of a Papal exaction of one-fifth of
the property of foreign beneficed clerks in England, in order to support
the war then waged by the Pope on the Emperor of Germany.  The royal
Council was stirred, and told its listless master that he "ought not to
suffer England to become a spoil and a desolation to immigrants, like a
vineyard without a wall, exposed to wild beasts."  His Majesty, like a
true son of holy Church, replied that he "neither wished nor dared to
oppose the Pope in any thing."  As if to make confusion worse
confounded, the Archbishop of Canterbury (subsequently known as Saint
Edmund of Pontigny) aspired to become a second Becket, and appealed to
the Pope to do away with state patronage, which he of course considered
ought to be vested in the Primate.  King Henry, supine as he was, was
roused at last, and sent a message to Rome to the effect that the appeal
of the Archbishop was contrary to his royal dignity.  The Pope declined
to entertain the appeal: and the King, we are told (by a monk) "became
more tyrannical than ever," and appointed Bonifacio of Savoy to the See
of Winchester.  The defeated Archbishop submitted to the Pope's demand
of a fifth of his income: but when the Pope, emboldened by success,
came, to an agreement with the Italian priests occupying English
benefices, that on condition of their helping him against the Emperor,
all benefices in his gift should be bestowed upon Italians, the
Archbishop could bear no longer, and he left England, never to return.
He died at Pontigny, his birthplace, on the sixteenth of November
following; and not long afterwards, King Henry reverently knelt to
worship at the tomb of the saint [Note 1] who had been a thorn in his
side as long as he lived.

Then the English Abbots, cruelly mulcted by the Pope, appealed to their
natural Sovereign, to be met by a scowl, and to hear the Legate told
that he might choose the best of the royal castles wherein to imprison
them.  Twenty-four Roman priests came over to fill English benefices:
and at last, when the Legate left England (for which "no one was sorry
but the King"), it was calculated that with the exception of church
plate, he carried out of England more wealth than he left in it.

But in the halls of Earl Hubert at Westminster, all interest in outside
calamities was lost in the inside.  As that spring drew on towards
summer, the blindest eyes could no longer refuse to see that the white
lily had faded at last, and the star was going out.

The trial of patience had been long for Margaret but it was over now.

Master Aristoteles could not understand it.  The maiden had no disease
that he could discover: and to think that the blessed hair of Saint
Dominic should have failed to restore her!  It was most unaccountable.

There was no word of complaint from the dying girl.  She no longer
thought it strange that God should have made her young life short and
bitter.  The lesson was learned, at last.

So gradually her life went out, that no one expected the end just when
it came.  Weaker and weaker she grew from day to day; more unable to sit
up, to work, to talk: but the transition from life to death was so quiet
that it was difficult for those around to realise how near it was.

Margaret had risen and dressed every day, but had lain outside her bed
when dressed, for the greater part of April.  It was May Day now, and in
all the streets were May-poles and May dancers, singing and sunshine.

Eva went out early, with a staff of attendants, to join in the
festivities.

"Why, what good can there be in my staying at home?" she said, answering
Doucebelle's face.  "Margaret will not be any better because I am here.
And then, when I come in at night, I can tell her all about it.  And it
is no use talking, Doucebelle!  I really cannot bear this sort of thing!
I get so melancholy, you have no idea!  I don't know what would become
of me if I had not some diversion."

Beatrice and Doucebelle stayed with Margaret: Doucebelle from a sort of
inward sensation, she hardly knew what or why; Beatrice from a remark
made by Bruno the night before.

"It will not be long, now, at least," he had said.

The day wore slowly on, but it seemed just like twenty days which had
preceded it.  Bruno paid his daily visit towards evening.

"Are the streets very full of holiday-makers?" asked Margaret.

"Very full, my daughter.  There is a great crowd round the May-pole."

"I hope Eva will enjoy herself."

"I have no doubt she will."

"It seems so far off, now," said Margaret, dreamily.  "As if I were
where I could hardly see it--somewhere above this world, and all the
things that are in the world.  Father, have you any idea what there will
be in Heaven?"

"There will be Christ," answered Bruno.  "And what may be implied in
`His glory, which God hath given Him,'--our finite minds are scarcely
capable of guessing.  Only, His will is that His people shall behold it
and share it.  It must be something that He thinks worth seeing--He, who
has beheld the glory of God before the worlds were."

"Father," said Margaret, with deep feeling, "it seems too much that _we_
should see it."

"True.  But not too much that He should bestow it.  He gives,--as He
forgives--like a king."

Like what king?--was the thought in Doucebelle's mind.  Not like the one
of whom she knew any thing--who was responsible before God for that
death which was coming on so quietly, yet so surely.

Beatrice had left the room a few minutes before, and she was now
returning to it through the ante-chamber.  The dusk was rapidly falling,
and, not knowing of any presence but her own, she was extremely startled
to find herself grasped by the shoulder, by a firm hand which evidently
had no intention of standing any trifling.  She looked up into the face
of a stranger, and yet a face which was not altogether strange.  It was
that of a tall, handsome man, with fair hair, and a stern, pained
compression of brow and lips.

"Is it true?" he said in a husky voice.

"Is what true?"  Beatrice was too startled to think what he meant.

The grasp upon her shoulder tightened till a weaker woman would have
screamed.

"Belasez, do not trifle with me!  Is she dying?"

And then, all at once, Beatrice knew who it was that asked her.

"It is too true, Sir Richard," she said sadly, pityingly, with almost a
reverential compassion for that faithful love which had brought him
there that night.

"I must see her, Belasez."

"Is it wise, Sir Richard?"

"Wise!"

"Pardon me--is it right?"

"Right!--what is the wrong?  She is my wife, in God's sight--she and
none other.  What do I care for Pope or King?  Is not God above both?
We plighted our vows to Him, and none but He could part us."

"Let me break it to her, then," said Beatrice, feeling scarcely so much
convinced as overwhelmed.  "It will startle her if she be not told
beforehand."

Richard's only answer was to release Beatrice from his grasp.  She
passed into Margaret's bower, and, was surprised to see a strange gleam
in the eyes of the dying girl.

"Beatrice, Richard is here.  I know I heard his voice.  Bring him to
me."

"God has told her," said Bruno, in an undertone, as he left the room,
with a sign to Beatrice and Doucebelle to follow.

They stood in the ante-chamber, minute after minute, but no sound came
through the closed door.  Half an hour passed in total silence.  At last
Bruno said--

"I think some one should go in."

But no one liked to do it, and the silence went on again.

Then Hawise same in, and wanted to know what they were all doing there.
She was excessively shocked when Doucebelle told her.  How extremely
improper!  She must go in and put a stop to it that minute.

Hawise tapped at the door, but no answer came.  She opened it, and
stood, silenced and frightened by what she saw.  Richard de Clare bent
over the bed, pouring passionate, unanswered kisses upon dead violet
eyes, and tenderly smoothing the tresses of the cedar hair.

"The Lord has been here!" said Beatrice involuntarily.

"O Lord, be thanked that Thou hast given Thy child quiet rest at last!"
was the response from Bruno.

Richard stood up and faced them.

"Is this God's doing, or is it man's?" he said, in a voice which sounded
almost like an execration of some one.  "God gave me this white dove, to
nestle in my bosom and to be the glory of my life.  Who took her from
me?  Does one of you dare to say it was God?  It was man!--a man who
shall pay for it, if he coin his heart's blood to do so.  And if the
payment cost my heart's blood, it will be little matter, seeing it has
cost my heart already."

He drew his dagger, and bending down again, severed one of the long soft
tresses of the cedar hair.

"Farewell, my dove!" he murmured, in a tone so altered that it was
difficult to recognise the same voice.  "Thou at least shalt suffer no
more.  Thy place is with the blessed saints and the holy angels, where
nothing may ever enter that shall grieve or defile.  But surely as thou
art safe housed in Heaven, and I am left desolate on earth, thy death
shall be avenged by fair means or by foul!"

"`Vengeance is Mine; I will repay, saith the Lord,'" softly quoted Bruno
as Richard passed him in the doorway.

"He will,--by my hands!"

And Richard de Clare was seen no more.

It was hard to tell the poor mother, who came into her Margaret's bower
with a bright smile, guessing so little of the terrible news in store.
Tenderly as they tried to break it, she fainted away, and had to be
nursed back to life and diligently cared for.  But all was over for the
night, and Doucebelle and Beatrice were beginning to think of bed,
before Eva made her appearance.  Of course the news had to be told
again.

"Oh dear, how shocking!" said Eva, putting down her bouquet.  "How very
distressing!  (I am afraid those flowers will never keep till morning.)
Well, do you know, I am really thankful I was not here.  What good could
it have done poor dear Margaret, you know?--and I am so easily upset,
and so very sensitive!  I never can _bear_ scenes of that sort.  (Dear,
I had no idea my shoes were so splashed!)  As it is, I shall not sleep a
wink.  I sha'n't get over it for a week,--if I do then!  Oh, how very
shocking!  Look, Doucebelle, aren't these cowslips sweet?"

"Eva, wilt thou let me have some of the white flowers--for Margaret?"
said Doucebelle.

"For Margaret!--why, what dost thou mean?  Oh!  To put by her in her
coffin?  Horrid!  Really, Dulcie, I think that is great waste.  And the
bouquet is so nicely made up,--it would be such a pity to pull it to
pieces!  I spent half an hour at least in putting it together, and
Brimnatyn de Hertiland helped me.  Of course thou canst have them if
thou must,--but--"

Doucebelle quietly declined the gift so doubtfully offered.

"I wish, Doucebelle, thou wouldst have more consideration for people's
feelings!" said Eva in a querulous tone, smoothing the petals of her
flowers.  "I am sure, whenever I look at a bouquet for the next
twelvemonth, I shall think of this.  I cannot help it--things do take
such hold of me!  And just think, how easily all that might be avoided!"

"I beg thy pardon, Eva.  I am sorry I asked thee," was the soft answer.

It was not far to Margaret's grave, for they laid her in the quiet
cloisters of Westminster Abbey, and the King who had been an accessory
to her end followed her bier.  Hers was not the only life that his act
had shortened.  Earl Hubert had virtually done with earth, when he saw
lowered into the cold ground the coffin of his Benjamin.  He survived
her just two years, and laid down his weary burden of life on the fourth
of May, 1243.

When Margaret was gone, there was no further tie to Bury Castle for
Bruno and his daughter.  Bishop Grosteste was again applied to, and
responded as kindly as before, though circumstances did not allow him to
do it equally to his satisfaction.  The rich living originally offered
to Bruno had of course been filled up, and there was nothing at that
moment in the episcopal gift but some very small ones.  The best of
these he gave; and about two months after the death of Margaret, Bruno
and Beatrice took leave of the Countess, and removed to their new home.
It was a quiet little hamlet in the south of Lincolnshire, with a
population of barely three hundred souls; and Beatrice's time was filled
up by different duties from those which had occupied her at Bury Castle.
The summer glided away in a peaceful round of most unexciting events.
There had been so much excitement hitherto in their respective lives,
that the priest and his daughter were only too thankful for a calm
stretch of life, all to themselves.

One evening towards the close of summer, as Bruno came home to his
little parsonage, where the dog-roses looked in at the windows, and the
honeysuckles climbed round the porch, a sight met him which assured him
that his period of peace and content was ended.  On the stone bench in
the porch, alone, intently examining a honeysuckle, sat Sir John de
Averenches.

Bruno de Malpas was much too shrewd to suppose that his society was the
magnet which had attracted the silent youth some fifty miles across the
country.  He sighed, but resigning himself to the inevitable, lifted his
biretta as he came up to the door.  Sir John rose and greeted him with
evident cordiality, but he did not appear to have any thing particular
to say beyond two self-evident statements--that it was a fine evening,
and the honeysuckles were pretty.

"Is Beatrice within?" said the priest, feeling pretty sure that he knew.

Sir John demurely thought not.  It was another half-hour before Beatrice
made her appearance; and Bruno noticed that the unexpected presence of a
third person evoked no expression of surprise on her part.  The
preparations for supper were made by Beatrice and her attendant
handmaiden Sabina; and after the meal was over, Bruno discreetly went
off, with the interesting observation that he was about to visit a sick
person at the furthest part of the parish.  Sir John had taken his seat
on the extreme end of a form, and Beatrice came and sat with her
embroidery at the other end.  Ten minutes of profound silence
intervened.

"Beatrice!"

"Yes."

Another minute of silence.

"Beatrice!"

"Well?"

"Beatrice, what dost thou think of me?"

Beatrice coolly cut off an end of yellow silk, and threaded her needle
with blue.

"Ask my father."

"How does he know what thou thinkest?"

"Well, he always does," said Beatrice, calmly fastening the blue silk on
the wrong side of the material.

"Wilt thou not tell me thyself?"

"I should, if I wanted to be rid of thee."

The distance between the two occupants of the form was materially
lessened.

"Then thou dost not want to be rid of me?"

"I can work while I am talking," replied Beatrice, in her very coolest
manner.

"Why dost thou think I came, Beatrice?"

"Because it pleased thee, I should think."

The needle was drawn from the blue silk, and a needleful of scarlet went
in instead, while the end of the blue thread was carefully secured in
Beatrice's left hand for future use.

"One, two, three, four,"--Beatrice was half audibly counting her
stitches.

"It did please me, Beatrice."

"Five, six--all right, Sir John--seven, eight, nine--"

"Does it please thee?"

"Thirteen, fourteen--it is pleasant to have some one to talk to--
fifteen, sixteen--when I am not counting--seventeen, eighteen,
nineteen."

And in went the needle, and the scarlet silk began to flow in and out
with rapidity.

"Do I interrupt thee, Beatrice?"

"Thanks, I have done counting for the present."

"Would it interrupt thee very much to be married?"

"Well, I should think it would."  Beatrice stopped the scarlet, and
rethreaded the blue.

"More than thou wouldst like?"

"That would depend on circumstances."

"What circumstances?" inquired the bashful yet persistent suitor.

"Who was to marry me, principally."

"Suppose I was?"

"Thou canst not, till thou hast asked my father."

There was a gleam in the dark eyes veiled with their long lashes.  It
might be either resentment or fun.

"May I ask him, Beatrice?"

"Did I not tell thee so at first?"

This curious conversation had taken so long, and had been interrupted by
so many pauses, that Bruno appeared before it had progressed further.
He glanced at the pair with some amusement in his eyes, not unmixed with
sadness, for he had a decided foreboding that he was about to lose his
Beatrice.  But no more was said that night.

The next morning, Sir John de Averenches made the formal appeal which
Bruno was fully expecting.

"I am not good at words, Father," he said, with honest manliness; "and I
know the maiden is fair beyond many.  You may easily look higher for
her; but you will not easily find one that loves her better."

"Truly, my son, that is mine own belief," said Bruno.  "But hast thou
fully understood that she is of Jewish descent, which many Christian
knights would count a blot on their escocheons?"

"Being a Christian, that makes _no_ difference to me."

"Well!  She shall decide for herself; but I fancy I know what she will
say.  It will be hard to part with her."

"Why should you, Father?  Will she not still want a confessor?--and
could she have a better than you?"

"Thank you, Father!" said Beatrice demurely, when Bruno told her that
his consent was given, contingent upon hers.  "Then I will begin my
wedding-dress."

In this extremely cool manner the fair maiden intimated her intention of
becoming a matron.  But Bruno, who knew every change of her features and
colour, was well aware that she felt a great deal more than she said.
The mask was soon dropped.

The wedding-dress was a marvel of her own lovely embroidery.  It was
worn about the beginning of winter, and once more Bruno resigned his
parish duties, and became, as his son-in-law had wisely suggested, a
family confessor.

They heard from Bury that the marriage of Eva de Braose took place about
the same time.  And the general opinion in the Lincolnshire parsonage
was rather, as respected Sir William de Cantilupe, one of condolence
than of congratulation.

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Eighteen years after that summer, a solitary traveller was approaching
the city of Tewkesbury.  He sat down on a low wall which skirted the
road, and wiped his heated brow.  He was a tall, fine-looking man, with
a dark olive complexion, and clustering masses of black hair.  There was
no one in sight, and the traveller began to talk in an undertone to
himself, as solitary men are sometimes wont to do.

"A good two hours before sunset, I suppose," he said, looking towards
the sun, which was blazing fiercely.  "Pugh! where does that horrid
smell come from?  Ah, that is the vesper bell, as they call it--the
unclean beasts that they are!  Well, we at least are pure from every
shadow of idolatry.

"Yet are we pure from sin?  I do think, now, it was a pity--a mistake--
that visit of mine to Sir Piers de Rievaulx.  I might have let that girl
live--the girl that Belasez loved.  Well! she is one of the creeping
things now.  She--our Belasez!  This is a cross-grained, crooked sort of
world.  Faugh! that smell again!

"I suppose this is the wall of Tewkesbury Castle.  Is my Lord the Earl
at home, I wonder?  How I did hate that boy!

"What is coming yonder, with those jingling bells?  A string of pilgrims
to some accursed shrine, most likely.  May these heathen idolaters be
all confounded, and the chosen people of Adonai be brought home in
peace!  I could see, I dare say, if I stood on the wall.  They may have
some vile idol with them, and if I do not get out of the way--"

He had sprung upon the parapet, and stood trying so to twist himself as
to catch a glimpse of the religious procession which he supposed to be
approaching, when suddenly he slipped and fell backwards.  A wild cry
for "Help!" rang through the startled air.  Where was he going?  Down,
down, plunging overhead into some soft, evil-odoured, horrible mass,
from which, by grasping an iron bar that projected above, he just
managed so far to raise himself as to get his head free.  And then the
dreadful truth broke upon him, and his cries for help became piercing.

Delecresse had fallen into the open cess-pool of Tewkesbury Castle.

Suddenly he ceased to shriek, and all was still.  Not that he needed
help any the less, nor that he was less conscious of it, but because he
remembered what at first he had forgotten in his terror and disgust,
that until sunset it was the rest of the holy Sabbath unto the Lord.
Perhaps, by clinging to the iron bar, he could live till the sun dropped
below the horizon.  At any rate, Delecresse, sternest of Pharisees to
his heart's core, would not profane the Sabbath, even for life.

But now there was a little stir outside, and a voice shouted--

"What ho!--who cried for help?"

"I."

"Who art thou, and where?"

"I have fallen into the cess-pool; I pray thee, friend, whoever thou
art, to bring or send me something on which I can rest till sunset, and
then help me forth."

"The saints be blessed! a jolly place to fall into.  But why, in the
name of all the Calendar, dost thou want to wait till sunset?"

"Because I am a Jew, and until then is the holy Sabbath."

A peal of laughter answered the explanation.

"Hope thou mayest enjoy it!  Well, if ever I heard such nonsense!  Is it
worth while pulling a Jew out?--what sayest thou, Anselm?"

"He is a man, poor soul!" returned a second voice.  "Nay, let us not
leave him to such a death as that."

"Look here, old Jew!  I will go and fetch a ladder and rope.  I should
pull my dog out of that hole, and perhaps thou mayest be as good."

"I will not be taken out till sunset," returned Delecresse stubbornly.

"The fellow's a mule!  Hie thee, Anselm, and ask counsel of our gracious
Lord what we shall do."

A strange feeling crept over Delecresse when he heard his fate, for life
or death, thus placed in the hands of the man whose life he had wrecked.
Anselm was heard to run off quickly, and in a few minutes he returned.

"Sir Richard the Earl laughed a jolly laugh when I told him," was his
report.  "He saith, Let the cur be, if he will not be plucked forth
until Monday morning: for if Saturday be his Sabbath, Sunday is mine,
and what will defile the one will defile the other."  [This part of the
story is historical.]

"Monday morning!  He will be a dead man, hours before that!"

"So he will.  It cannot be helped, except--Jew, wilt thou be pulled out
now, or not?  If not now, then not at all."

For one moment, the heart of Delecresse grew sick and faint within him
as he contemplated the awful alternatives presented to his choice.
Then, gathering all his strength, he shouted back his final decision.

"No!  I will not break the Sabbath of my God."

The men outside laughed, uttered an expression of contemptuous pity, and
he heard their footsteps grow faint in the distance, and knew that he
was left to die as horrible a death as can befall humanity.  Only one
other cry arose, and that was not for the ears of men.  It was the
prayer of one in utter error, yet in terrible extremity: and it was
honestly sincere.

"Adonai!  I have sinned and done evil, all my life long.  Specially I
have sinned against this man, who has left me to die here in this
horrible place.  Now therefore, O my God, I beseech Thee, let the
sufferings of Thy servant be accepted before Thee as an atonement for
his sin, and let this one good deed, that I have preferred death rather
than break Thy law, rise before Thee as the incense with the evening
sacrifice!"

Yes, it was utter error.  Yet the Christians of his day, one here and
there excepted, could have taught him no better.  And what had they
offered him instead?  Idol-worship, woman-worship, offerings for the
dead,--every thing which the law of God had forbidden.  In the day when
the blood of the martyrs is demanded at the hand of Babylon, will there
be no reckoning for the souls of those thousand sons of Israel, whom she
has persistently thrust away from Christ, by erecting a rood-screen of
idols between Him and them?

When day dawned on the Monday, they pulled out of the cess-pool the body
of a dead man.

One month later, in the chapter-house at Canterbury, King Henry the
Third stood, an humble and helpless suppliant, before his assembled
Barons.  There he was forced, utterly against his will and wish, to sign
an additional charter granting liberties to England, and binding his own
hands.  It was Simon de Montfort who had brought matters to this pass.
But Simon de Montfort was not the tall, fair, stately man who forced the
pen into the unwilling fingers of the cowering King, and who held out
the Evangelisterium for the swearing of his hated oath.  King Henry
looked up into the cold steel-like glitter of those stern blue eyes, and
the firm set expression of the compressed lips, and realised in an
instant that in this man he would find neither misgiving nor mercy.  It
was a great perplexity to him that the man on whom he had showered such
favours should thus take part against him.  He had forgotten all about
that April morning, twenty-three years before; and had no conception
that between himself and the eyes of Richard de Clare, floated

  "A shadow like an angel's, with bright hair,"

nor that when that scene in the chapter-house was over, and Richard
returned his good Damascus blade to its scabbard, he murmured within his
heart to ears that heard not--

"I have avenged thee at last!"

But Richard never knew that his heaviest vengeance had been exacted one
month sooner, when, with that bitter mirth which Anselm had misnamed, he
left an unknown Jew to perish in misery.

The sun was setting that evening over Lincoln.  Just on the rise of
Steephill stood a handsome Norman house, with a garden stretching
behind.  In the garden, on a stone settle, sat an old priest and a very
handsome middle-aged lady.  Two young sisters were wandering about the
garden with their arms round each other's waists; a young man stood at
the ornamental fountain, talking playfully to the hawk upon his wrist;
while on the grass at the lady's feet sat two pretty children, their
laps full of flowers.  A conversation which had been running was
evidently coming to a conclusion.

"Then you think, Father, that it is never lawful, under any
circumstances, to do evil that good may come?"

"God can bring good out of evil, my Beatrice.  But it is one of His
prerogatives."

------------------------------------------------------------------------

Note 1.  _Rot.  Exit., Past_., 41 Henry Third.



APPENDIX.

Historical Appendix.

FAMILY OF DE BURGH.

Hubert De Burgh, whose ancestry is unknown with certainty (though some
genealogists attempt to derive him from Herlouin de Conteville, and his
wife Arlette, mother of William the Conqueror), was probably _born_
about 1168-70, and created Justiciary of England, June 15, 1214.  He was
also Lord Chancellor and Lord Chamberlain, with abundance of smaller
offices.  He was created Earl of Kent, February 11, 1227.  After all the
strange vicissitudes through which he had passed, it seems almost
surprising that he was allowed to die in his bed, at Banstead, May [4?],
1243, aged about 74, and surviving his daughter just two years.
[Character historical.]  He married--

A.  Margaret, daughter and heir of Robert de Arsic or Arsike: dates
unknown.  (Hubert had previously been contracted, April 28, 1200, to
Joan, daughter of William de Vernon, Earl of Devon; but the marriage did
not take place.)

B.  Beatrice, daughter and sole heir of William de Warenne of Wirmgay,
and widow of Dodo Bardolf: apparently _married_ after 1209, and _died_
in or about 1214.

C.  Isabel, youngest daughter and co-heir of William Earl of Gloucester,
made Countess of Gloucester by King John, to the prejudice of her two
elder sisters: affianced by her father to John, Count of Mortaigne
[afterwards King John], at Windsor, September 28, 1176; married to him
at Salisbury, August 29, 1189: divorced on her husband's accession,
1200, on pretext of being within the prohibited degrees.  She married
(2) Geoffrey de Mandeville, Earl of Essex, to whom she was sold by the
husband who had repudiated her, for the sum of twenty thousand marks, in
1213.  In the wars of the Barons, she threw all her influence into the
scale against the King; but she showed that her enmity was personal, not
political, by at once returning to her allegiance on the accession of
Henry the Third.  She was then given in _marriage_ (3) to Hubert de
Burgh, into whose hands the manor of Walden was delivered, as part of
her dower, August 13, 1217; the marriage probably took place shortly
before that date, and certainly before the 17th of September.  Isabel
was Hubert's wife for so short a time, that some writers have doubted
the fact of the marriage altogether; but it is amply authenticated.  She
was dead on the 18th of November following, as the Close Rolls bear
witness; and the Obituary of Canterbury Cathedral and the Chronicle of
Rochester agree in stating that she died October 14, 1217.  She was
buried in Canterbury Cathedral.

D.  Margaret, eldest daughter of William the First, King of Scotland,
surnamed The Lion; affianced, 1196, to Otho of Brunswick; commuted to
the care of King John of England in 1209; _married_ at York, June 25,
1221; _died_ 1259, leaving no surviving issue.  [Character inferentially
historical.]

_Issue of Earl Hubert_.

A.  _By Margaret Arsic_.

John, knighted Whit Sunday, 1229; _died_ 1274-75, leaving issue.
_Married_:--

Hawise, daughter and heir of Sir William de Lanvalay: _married_ before
November 21, 1234; _died_ 1249; _buried_ at Colchester.  [Character
imaginary.]

2.  _Hubert_, living 1281-82; ancestor of the Marquis of Clanricarde.
Whom he married is not known.

D.  _By Margaret of Scotland_:--

Margaret, or Margery--she bears both names on the Rolls--_born_ probably
1222; _married_ at Bury Saint Edmund's "when the Earl was at Merton"--
probably January 11-26, 1236,--clandestinely, but with connivance of
mother, to Richard de Clare, Earl of Gloucester; divorced 1237; livery
of her estates granted to brother John, May 5, 1241; therefore _died_
shortly before that date.  Most writers attribute to Earl Hubert another
daughter, whom they call Magotta: but the Rolls show no evidence of any
daughter but Margaret.  Magotta, or Magot, is manifestly a Latinism of
Margot, the French diminutive for Margaret; the Earl's gifts to
monasteries for the souls of himself and relatives, include "M. his
daughter," but make no mention of two; and the grants made by the King
to Earl Hubert and Margaret his wife, and Margaret their daughter,
certainly imply that Margaret was the sole heir of her mother.
[Character inferentially historical, except as regards religion, for
which no evidence is forthcoming.]

RICHARD DE CLARE.

He was the eldest son of Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester and his wife Isabel
Marshal (who married, secondly, the King's brother, Richard Earl of
Cornwall): _born_ 1222, the same year as that which probably saw the
birth of Margaret de Burgh.  King Henry obliged him to _marry_, in or
about January, 1239, Maud de Lacy, daughter of John, Earl of Lincoln, by
whom (after the death of Margaret) he had a family of three sons and
three daughters.  His eldest daughter he named after his lost love; but
she proved a far less amiable character.  Earl Richard was one of
several noblemen who _died_, we are told, from poison, in consequence of
dining with Queen Eleonore's cousin, Count Pietro of Savoy, June 14,
1262.  He was _buried_ in Tewkesbury Abbey.  Richard stood foremost of
the English nobles in the wars of the Barons against Henry the Third,
and with his own hand forced the King to swear to the terms they
dictated, in 1259, as is stated in the story.  [Character historical.]

FICTITIOUS CHARACTERS.

These are, the priests at Bury Castle; the various Jews introduced;
Levina; Doucebelle de Vaux.

Eva de Braose, Marie de Lusignan, Sir John de Burgh and his wife Hawise,
are historical so far as their existence is concerned, but the
characters ascribed to them are imaginary.

The dreadful end of Delecresse is thus far true,--that a Jew was thus
treated by Richard de Clare.  But who it really was who revealed to King
Henry the clandestine marriage of Richard and Margaret, is one of the
inscrutable mysteries of which no evidence remains.





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Earl Hubert's Daughter - The Polishing of the Pearl - A Tale of the 13th Century" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home